Partners in crime

By Agatha Christie

The Project Gutenberg eBook of Partners in crime
    
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.

Title: Partners in crime

Author: Agatha Christie


        
Release date: April 2, 2026 [eBook #78342]

Language: English

Original publication: New York, NY: Dodd, Mead & Company, Inc, 1929

Other information and formats: www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/78342

Credits: Greg Weeks, Mary Meehan and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net


*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PARTNERS IN CRIME ***




                           Partners in Crime

                          By Agatha Christie


                           PARTNERS IN CRIME
            _Copyright 1929 by Dodd, Mead & Company, Inc._




                               CONTENTS

                 1 A Fairy in the Flat

                 2 A Pot of Tea

                 3 The Affair of The Pink Pearl

                 4 The Affair of The Pink Pearl (continued)

                 5 The Adventure of The Sinister Stranger

                 6 The Adventure of The Sinister Stranger (continued)

                 7 Finessing the King

                 8 The Gentleman Dressed in Newspaper

                 9 The Case of The Missing Lady

                10 Blindman's Buff

                11 The Man in the Mist

                12 The Man in the Mist (continued)

                13 The Crackler

                14 The Crackler (continued)

                15 The Sunningdale Mystery

                16 The Sunningdale Mystery (continued)

                17 The House of Lurking Death

                18 The House of Lurking Death (continued)

                19 The Unbreakable Alibi

                20 The Clergyman's Daughter

                21 The Red House

                22 The Ambassador's Boots

                23 The Man Who Was No. 16




                           PARTNERS IN CRIME




                               CHAPTER I

                          A FAIRY IN THE FLAT


Mrs. Thomas Beresford shifted her position on the divan and looked
gloomily out of the window of the flat. The prospect was not an
extended one, consisting solely of a small block of flats on the other
side of the road. Mrs. Beresford sighed and then yawned.

"I wish," she said, "something would happen."

Her husband looked up reprovingly.

"Be careful, Tuppence, this craving for vulgar sensation alarms me."

Tuppence sighed and closed her eyes dreamily.

"So Tommy and Tuppence were married," she chanted, "and lived happily
ever afterwards. And six years later they were still living together
happily ever afterwards. It is extraordinary," she said, "how different
everything always is from what you think it is going to be."

"A very profound statement, Tuppence. But not original. Eminent poets
and still more eminent divines have said it before--and, if you will
excuse me saying so, have said it better."

"Six years ago," continued Tuppence, "I would have sworn that with
sufficient money to buy things with, and with you for a husband, all
life would have been one grand sweet song, as one of the poets you seem
to know so much about puts it."

"Is it me or the money that palls upon you?" inquired Tommy coldly.

"Palls isn't exactly the word," said Tuppence kindly. "I'm used to my
blessings, that's all. Just as one never thinks what a boon it is to be
able to breathe through one's nose until one has a cold in the head."

"Shall I neglect you a little?" suggested Tommy. "Take other women
about to night clubs? That sort of thing?"

"Useless," said Tuppence. "You would only meet me there with other men.
And I should know perfectly well that you didn't care for the other
women, whereas you would never be quite sure that I didn't care for the
other men. Women are so much more thorough."

"It's only in modesty that men score top marks," murmured her husband.
"But what is the matter with you, Tuppence? Why this yearning
discontent?"

"I don't know. I want things to happen. Exciting things. Wouldn't you
like to go chasing German spies again, Tommy? Think of the wild days of
peril we went through once. Of course I know you're more or less in the
Secret Service now, but it's pure office work."

"You mean you'd like them to send me into darkest Russia disguised as a
Bolshevik bootlegger, or something of that sort?"

"That wouldn't be any good," said Tuppence. "They wouldn't let me
go with you and I'm the person who wants something to do so badly.
Something to do. That is what I keep saying all day long."

"Woman's sphere," suggested Tommy waving his hand.

"Twenty minutes' work after breakfast every morning keeps the flat
going to perfection. You have nothing to complain of, have you?"

"Your housekeeping is so perfect, Tuppence, as to be almost monotonous."

"I do like gratitude," said Tuppence.

"You, of course, have got your work," she continued, "but tell me,
Tommy, don't you ever have a secret yearning for excitement, for things
to _happen_?"

"No," said Tommy, "at least I don't think so. It is all very well to
want things to happen--they might not be pleasant things."

"How prudent men are," sighed Tuppence. "Don't you ever have a wild
secret yearning for romance--adventure--life?"

"What _have_ you been reading, Tuppence?" asked Tommy.

"Think how exciting it would be," went on Tuppence, "if we heard a wild
rapping at the door and went to open it and in staggered a dead man."

"If he was dead he couldn't stagger," said Tommy critically.

"You know what I mean," said Tuppence. "They always stagger in just
before they die and fall at your feet just gasping out a few enigmatic
words. 'The Spotted Leopard' or something like that."

"I advise a course of Schopenhauer or Emmanuel Kant," said Tommy.

"That sort of thing would be good for you," said Tuppence. "You are
getting fat and comfortable."

"I am not," said Tommy indignantly. "Anyway, you do slimming exercises
yourself."

"Everybody does," said Tuppence. "When I said you were getting fat I
was really speaking metaphorically, you are getting prosperous and
sleek and comfortable."

"I don't know what has come over you," said her husband.

"The spirit of adventure," murmured Tuppence. "It is better than a
longing for romance anyway. I have that sometimes, too. I think of
meeting a man, a really handsome man--"

"You have met me," said Tommy. "Isn't that enough for you?"

"A brown lean man, terrifically strong, the kind of man who can ride
anything and lassoos wild horses--"

"Complete with sheepskin trousers and a cowboy hat," interpolated Tommy
sarcastically.

"--and has lived in the Wilds," continued Tuppence.

"I should like him to fall simply madly in love with me. I should, of
course, rebuff him virtuously and be true to my marriage vows but my
heart would secretly go out to him."

"Well," said Tommy, "I often wish that I may meet a really beautiful
girl. A girl with corn-colored hair who will fall desperately in love
with me. Only I don't think I rebuff her--in fact I am quite sure I
don't."

"That," said Tuppence, "is naughty temper."

"What," said Tommy, "is really the matter with you, Tuppence? You have
never talked like this before."

"No, but I have been boiling up inside for a long time," said Tuppence.
"You see it is very dangerous to have everything you want--including
enough money to buy things. Of course there are always hats."

"You have got about forty hats already," said Tommy, "and they all look
alike."

"Hats are like that," said Tuppence. "They are not really alike. There
are _nuances_ in them. I saw rather a nice one in Violette's this
morning."

"If you haven't anything better to do than going on buying hats you
don't need--"

"That's it," said Tuppence. "That's exactly it. If I had something
better to do. I suppose I ought to take up good works. Oh, Tommy, I do
wish something exciting would happen. I feel--I really do feel it would
be good for us. If we could find a fairy--"

"Ah!" said Tommy. "It is curious your saying that."

He got up and crossed the room. Opening a drawer of the writing table
he took out a small snapshot print and brought it to Tuppence.

"Oh!" said Tuppence, "so you have got them developed. Which is this,
the one you took of this room or the one I took?"

"The one I took. Yours didn't come out. You under exposed it. You
always do."

"It is nice for you," said Tuppence, "to think that there is one thing
you can do better than me."

"A foolish remark," said Tommy, "but I will let it pass for the moment.
What I wanted to show you was this."

He pointed to a small white speck on the photograph.

"That is a scratch on the film," said Tuppence.

"Not at all," said Tommy. "That, Tuppence, is a fairy."

"Tommy, you idiot."

"Look for yourself."

He handed her a magnifying glass. Tuppence studied the print
attentively through it. Seen thus by a slight stretch of fancy the
scratch on the film could be imagined to represent a small winged
creature perched on the fender.

"It has got wings!" cried Tuppence. "What fun, a real live fairy in our
flat. Shall we write to Conan Doyle about it? Oh, Tommy. Do you think
she'll give us wishes?"

"You will soon know," said Tommy. "You have been wishing hard enough
for something to happen all the afternoon."

At that minute the door opened, and a tall lad of fifteen who seemed
undecided as to whether he was a footman or a page boy inquired in a
truly magnificent manner:

"Are you at Home, Madam? The front door bell has just rung."

"I wish Albert wouldn't go to the Pictures," sighed Tuppence after she
had signified her assent, and Albert had withdrawn. "He's copying a
Long Island butler now. Thank goodness I've cured him of asking for
people's cards and bringing them to me on a salver."

The door opened again, and Albert announced: "Mr. Carter," much as
though it were a Royal title.

"The Chief," muttered Tommy, in great surprise.

Tuppence jumped up with a glad exclamation, and greeted a tall
grey-haired man with piercing eyes and a tired smile.

"Mr. Carter, I _am_ glad to see you."

"That's good, Mrs. Tommy. Now answer me a question. How's life
generally?"

"Satisfactory, but dull," replied Tuppence with a twinkle.

"Better and better," said Mr. Carter. "I'm evidently going to find you
in the right mood."

"This," said Tuppence, "sounds exciting."

Albert, still copying the Long Island butler, brought in tea. When this
operation was completed without mishap and the door had closed behind
him Tuppence burst out once more.

"You did mean something, didn't you Mr. Carter? Are you going to send
us on a mission into darkest Russia?"

"Not exactly that," said Mr. Carter.

"But there is something."

"Yes--there is something. I don't think you are the kind who shrinks
from risks, are you, Mrs. Tommy?"

Tuppence's eyes sparkled with excitement.

"There is certain work to be done for the Department--and I fancied--I
just fancied--that it might suit you two."

"Go on," said Tuppence.

"I see that you take the Daily Leader," continued Mr. Carter, picking
up that journal from the table.

He turned to the advertisement column and indicating a certain
advertisement with his finger pushed the paper across to Tommy.

"Read that out," he said.

Tommy complied.

"The International Detective Agency. Theodore Blunt, Manager. Private
Inquiries. Large staff of confidential and highly skilled Inquiry
Agents. Utmost discretion. Consultations free. 118 Haleham St. W.C."

He looked inquiringly at Mr. Carter. The latter nodded.

"That detective agency has been on its last legs for some time," he
murmured. "Friend of mine acquired it for a mere song. We're thinking
of setting it going again--say, for a six months' trial. And during
that time, of course, it will have to have a Manager."

"What about Mr. Theodore Blunt?" asked Tommy.

"Mr. Blunt has been rather indiscreet, I'm afraid. In fact, Scotland
Yard have had to interfere. Mr. Blunt is being detained at His
Majesty's expense, and he won't tell us half of what we'd like to know."

"I see, sir," said Tommy. "At least, I think I see."

"I suggest that you have six months' leave from the office. Ill health.
And of course if you like to run a detective agency under the name of
Theodore Blunt, it's nothing to do with me."

Tommy eyed his Chief steadily.

"Any instructions, sir?"

"Mr. Blunt did some foreign business, I believe. Look out for blue
letters with a Russian stamp on them. From a ham merchant anxious to
find his wife who came as a Refugee to this country some years ago.
Moisten the stamp and you'll find the number 16 written underneath.
Make a copy of these letters and send the originals on to me. Also if
anyone comes to the office and makes a reference to the number 16,
inform me immediately."

"I understand, sir," said Tommy. "And apart from these instructions?"

Mr. Carter picked up his gloves from the table and prepared to depart.

"You can run the Agency as you please. I fancied--" his eyes twinkled
a little--"that it might amuse Mrs. Tommy to try her hand at a little
detective work."




                              CHAPTER II

                             A POT OF TEA


Mr. and Mrs. Beresford took possession of the offices of the
International Detective Agency a few days later. They were on the
second floor of a somewhat dilapidated building in Bloomsbury. In the
small outer office, Albert relinquished the rôle of a Long Island
butler, and took up that of office boy, a part which he played to
perfection. A paper bag of sweets, inky hands, and a tousled head was
his conception of the character.

From the outer office, two doors led into inner offices. On one door
was painted the legend "Clerks." On the other "Private." Behind
the latter was a small comfortable room furnished with an immense
businesslike desk, a lot of artistically labelled files, all empty,
and some solid leather-seated chairs. Behind the desk sat the pseudo
Mr. Blunt trying to look as though he had run a detective agency all
his life. A telephone, of course, stood at his elbow. Tuppence and he
had rehearsed several good telephone effects, and Albert also had his
instructions.

In the adjoining room was Tuppence, a typewriter, the necessary tables
and chairs of an inferior type to those in the room of the great Chief,
and a gas ring for making tea.

Nothing was wanting, in fact, save clients.

Tuppence, in the first ecstasies of initiation, had a few bright hopes.

"It will be too marvellous," she declared. "We will hunt down
murderers, and discover the missing family jewels, and find people
who've disappeared and detect embezzlers."

At this point Tommy felt it his duty to strike a more discouraging
note.

"Calm yourself, Tuppence, and try and forget the cheap fiction you are
in the habit of reading. Our clientele, if we have any clientele at
all--will consist solely of husbands who want their wives shadowed, and
wives who want their husbands shadowed. Evidence for divorce is the
sole prop of private inquiry agents."

"Ugh!" said Tuppence wrinkling a fastidious nose. "We shan't touch
divorce cases. We must raise the tone of our new profession."

"Ye-es," said Tommy doubtfully.

And now a week after installation they compare notes rather ruefully.

"Three idiotic women whose husbands go away for weekends," sighed
Tommy. "Anyone come whilst I was out at lunch?"

"A fat old man with a flighty wife," sighed Tuppence sadly. "I've read
in the papers for years that the divorce evil was growing, but somehow
I never seemed to realize it until this last week. I'm sick and tired
of saying 'We don't undertake divorce cases.'"

"We've put it in the advertisements now," Tommy reminded her. "So it
won't be so bad."

"I'm sure we advertise in the most tempting way too," said Tuppence,
in a melancholy voice. "All the same, I'm not going to be beaten. If
necessary, I shall commit a crime myself, and you will detect it."

"And what good would that do? Think of my feelings when I bid you a
tender farewell at Bow Street--or is it Vine Street?"

"You are thinking of your bachelor days," said Tuppence pointedly.

"The Old Bailey, that is what I mean," said Tommy.

"Well," said Tuppence, "something has got to be done about it. Here we
are bursting with talent and no chance of exercising it."

"I always like your cheery optimism, Tuppence. You seem to have no
doubt whatever that you have talent to exercise."

"Of course," said Tuppence opening her eyes very wide.

"And yet you have no expert knowledge whatever."

"Well, I have read every detective novel that has been published in the
last ten years."

"So have I," said Tommy, "but I have a sort of feeling that that
wouldn't really help us much."

"You always were a pessimist, Tommy. Belief in oneself--that is the
great thing."

"Well, you have got it all right," said her husband.

"Of course it is all right in detective stories," said Tuppence
thoughtfully, "because one works backwards. I mean if one knows the
solution one can arrange the clues. I wonder now--"

She paused, wrinkling her brows.

"Yes?" said Tommy, inquiringly.

"I have got a sort of an idea," said Tuppence. "It hasn't quite come
yet but it's coming." She rose resolutely. "I think I shall go and buy
that hat I told you about."

"Oh God!" said Tommy. "Another hat!"

"It's a very nice one," said Tuppence with dignity.

She went out with a resolute look on her face.

Once or twice in the following days Tommy inquired curiously about the
idea. Tuppence merely shook her head and told him to give her time.

And then, one glorious morning, the first client arrived, and all else
was forgotten.

There was a knock on the outer door of the office and Albert, who had
just placed an acid drop between his lips, roared out an indistinct
'come in.' He then swallowed the acid drop whole in his surprise and
delight. For this looked like the Real Thing.

A tall young man, exquisitely and beautifully dressed, stood hesitating
in the doorway.

"A toff, if ever there was one," said Albert to himself. His judgment
in such matters was good.

The young man was about twenty-four years of age, had beautifully
slicked-back hair, a tendency to pink rims round the eyes, and
practically no chin to speak of.

In an ecstasy, Albert pressed a button under his desk, and almost
immediately a perfect fusilade of typing broke out from the direction
of 'Clerks.' Tuppence had rushed to the post of duty. The effect of
this hum of industry was to overawe the young man still further.

"I say," he remarked. "Is this the whatnot--detective agency--Blunt's
Brilliant Detectives? All that sort of stuff, you know? Eh?"

"Did you want, sir, to speak to Mr. Blunt himself?" inquired Albert,
with an air of doubt as to whether such a thing could be managed.

"Well--yes, laddie, that was the jolly old idea. Can it be done?"

"You haven't an appointment, I suppose?"

The visitor became more and more apologetic.

"Afraid I haven't."

"It's always wise, sir, to ring up on the phone first. Mr. Blunt is so
terribly busy. He's engaged on the telephone at the moment. Called into
consultation by Scotland Yard."

The young man seemed suitably impressed.

Albert lowered his voice, and imparted information in a friendly
fashion.

"Important theft of documents from a Government Office. They want Mr.
Blunt to take up the case."

"Oh! really. I say. He must be no end of a fellow."

"The Boss, sir," said Albert, "is It."

The young man sat down on a hard chair, completely unconscious of the
fact that he was being subjected to keen scrutiny by two pairs of eyes
looking through cunningly contrived peepholes--those of Tuppence, in
the intervals of frenzied typing, and those of Tommy awaiting the
suitable moment.

Presently a bell rang with violence on Albert's desk.

"The Boss is free now. I will find out whether he can see you," said
Albert, and disappeared through the door marked "Private."

He reappeared immediately.

"Will you come this way, sir?"

The visitor was ushered into the private office, and a pleasant faced
young man with red hair and an air of brisk capability rose to greet
him.

"Sit down. You wished to consult me? I am Mr. Blunt."

"Oh! really. I say, you're awfully young, aren't you?"

"The day of the Old Men is over," said Tommy waving his hand. "Who
caused the War? The Old Men. Who is responsible for the present state
of unemployment? The Old Men. Who is responsible for every single
rotten thing that has happened? Again I say, the Old Men!"

"I expect you are right," said the client. "I know a fellow who is a
poet--at least he says he is a poet--and he always talks like that."

"Let me tell you this, sir, not a person on my highly trained staff is
a day over twenty-five. That is the truth."

Since the highly trained staff consisted of Tuppence and Albert, the
statement was truth itself.

"And now--the facts," said Mr. Blunt.

"I want you to find someone that's missing," blurted out the young man.

"Quite so. Will you give me the details?"

"Well, you see, it's rather difficult. I mean, it's a frightfully
delicate business and all that. She might be frightfully waxy about it.
I mean--well, it's so dashed difficult to explain."

He looked helplessly at Tommy. Tommy felt annoyed. He had been on the
point of going out to lunch, but he foresaw that getting the facts out
of this client would be a long and tedious business.

"Did she disappear of her own free will, or do you suspect abduction?"
he demanded crisply.

"I don't know," said the young man. "I don't know anything."

Tommy reached for a pad and pencil.

"First of all," he said, "will you give me your name? My office boy
is trained never to ask names. In that way consultations can remain
completely confidential."

"Oh! rather," said the young man. "Jolly good idea. My name--er--my
name's Smith."

"Oh! no," said Tommy. "The real one, please."

His visitor looked at him in awe.

"Er--St. Vincent," he said. "Lawrence St. Vincent."

"It's a curious thing," said Tommy, "how very few people there are
whose real name is Smith. Personally, I don't know anyone called Smith.
But nine men out of ten who wish to conceal their real name give that
of Smith. I am writing a monograph upon the subject."

At that moment a buzzer purred discreetly on his desk. That meant that
Tuppence was requesting to take hold. Tommy, who wanted his lunch, and
who felt profoundly unsympathetic towards Mr. St. Vincent, was only too
pleased to relinquish the helm.

"Excuse me," he said, and picked up the telephone.

Across his face there shot rapid changes--surprise, consternation,
slight elation.

"You don't say so," he said into the phone. "The Prime Minister
himself? Of course, in that case, I will come round at once."

He replaced the receiver on the hook, and turned to his client.

"My dear sir, I must ask you to excuse me. A most urgent summons. If
you will give the facts of the case to my confidential secretary, she
will deal with them."

He strode to the adjoining door.

"Miss Robinson."

Tuppence, very neat and demure with smooth black head and dainty collar
and cuffs, tripped in. Tommy made the necessary introductions and
departed.

"A lady you take an interest in has disappeared, I understand, Mr. St.
Vincent," said Tuppence, in her soft voice, as she sat down and took up
Mr. Blunt's pad and pencil. "A young lady?"

"Oh! rather," said Mr. St. Vincent. "Young--and--and--awfully
good-looking and all that sort of thing."

Tuppence's face grew grave.

"Dear me," she murmured. "I hope that--"

"You don't think anything's really happened to her?" demanded Mr. St.
Vincent, in lively concern.

"Oh! we must hope for the best," said Tuppence, with a kind of false
cheerfulness which depressed Mr. St. Vincent horribly.

"Oh! look here, Miss Robinson. I say, you must do something. Spare no
expense. I wouldn't have anything happen to her for the world. You seem
awfully sympathetic, and I don't mind telling you in confidence that
I simply worship the ground that girl walks on. She's a topper, an
absolute topper."

"Please tell me her name and all about her."

"Her name's Janet--I don't know her second name. She works in a hat
shop--Madame Violette's in Brook Street--but she's as straight as
they make them. Has ticked me off no end of times--I went round there
yesterday--waiting for her to come out--all the others came, but not
her. Then I found that she'd never turned up that morning to work at
all--sent no message either--old Madame was furious about it. I got
the address of her lodgings, and I went round there. She hadn't come
home the night before, and they didn't know where she was. I was simply
frantic. I thought of going to the police. But I knew that Janet would
be absolutely furious with me for doing that if she were really all
right and had gone off on her own. Then I remembered that she herself
had pointed out your advertisement to me one day in the paper and told
me that one of the women who'd been in buying hats had simply raved
about your ability and discretion and all that sort of thing. So I
toddled along here right away."

"I see," said Tuppence. "What is the address of her lodgings?"

The young man gave it to her.

"That's all, I think," said Tuppence reflectively. "That is to say--am
I to understand that you are engaged to this young lady?"

Mr. St. Vincent turned a brick red.

"Well, no--not exactly. I never said anything. But I can tell you this,
I mean to ask her to marry me as soon as ever I see her--if I ever do
see her again."

Tuppence laid aside her pad.

"Do you wish for our special twenty-four hour service?" she asked, in
business like tones.

"What's that?"

"The fees are doubled, but we put all our available staff on to the
case. Mr. St. Vincent, if the lady is alive, I shall be able to tell
you where she is by this time to-morrow."

"What? I say, that's wonderful."

"We only employ experts--and we guarantee results," said Tuppence
crisply.

"But I say, you know. You must have the most topping staff."

"Oh! we have," said Tuppence. "By the way, you haven't given me a
description of the young lady."

"She's got the most marvellous hair--sort of golden, but very deep,
like a jolly old sunset--that's it, a jolly old sunset. You know, I
never noticed things like sunsets until lately. Poetry too, there's a
lot more in poetry than I ever thought."

"Red hair," said Tuppence unemotionally, writing it down. "What height
should you say the lady was?"

"Oh! tallish, and she's got ripping eyes, dark blue, I think. And a
sort of decided manner with her--takes a fellow up short sometimes."

Tuppence wrote down a few words more, then closed her note book and
rose.

"If you will call here to-morrow at two o'clock, I think we shall have
news of some kind for you," she said. "Good morning, Mr. St. Vincent."

When Tommy returned Tuppence was just consulting a page of Debrett.

"I've got all the details," she said succinctly. "Lawrence St. Vincent
is the nephew and heir of the Earl of Cheriton. If we pull this through
we shall get publicity in the highest places."

Tommy read through the notes on the pad.

"What do you really think has happened to the girl?" he asked.

"I think," said Tuppence, "that she has fled at the dictates of her
heart, feeling that she loves this young man too well for her peace of
mind."

Tommy looked at her doubtfully.

"I know they do it in books," he said, "but I've never known any girl
who did it in real life."

"No?" said Tuppence. "Well, perhaps you're right. But I daresay
Lawrence St. Vincent will swallow that sort of slush. He's full
of romantic notions just now. By the way, I guaranteed results in
twenty-four hours--our special service."

"Tuppence--you congenital idiot, what made you do that?"

"The idea just came into my head. I thought it sounded rather well.
Don't you worry. Leave it to Mother. Mother knows best."

She went out, leaving Tommy profoundly dissatisfied.

Presently he rose, sighed, and went out to do what could be done,
cursing Tuppence's over fervent imagination.

When he returned weary and jaded at half past four, he found Tuppence
extracting a bag of biscuits from their place of concealment in one of
the files.

"You look hot and bothered," she remarked. "What have you been doing?"

Tommy groaned.

"Making a round of the Hospitals with that girl's description."

"Didn't I tell you to leave it to me?" demanded Tuppence.

"You can't find that girl single handed before two o'clock to-morrow."

"I can--and what's more, I have!"

"You have? What do you mean?"

"A simple problem, Watson, very simple indeed."

"Where is she now?"

Tuppence pointed a hand over her shoulder.

"She's in my office next door."

"What is she doing there?"

Tuppence began to laugh.

"Well," she said, "early training will tell, and with a kettle, a gas
ring, and half a pound of tea staring her in the face, the result is a
foregone conclusion."

"You see," continued Tuppence gently, "Madame Violette's is where I go
for my hats, and the other day I ran across an old pal of Hospital days
amongst the girls there. She gave up nursing after the War and started
a hat shop, failed, and took this job at Madame Violette's. We fixed up
the whole thing between us. She was to rub the advertisement well into
young St. Vincent, and then disappear. Wonderful efficiency of Blunt's
Brilliant Detectives. Publicity for us, and the necessary fillip to
young St. Vincent to bring him to the point of proposing. Janet was in
despair about it."

"Tuppence," said Tommy, "you take my breath away! The whole thing is
the most immoral business I ever heard of. You aid and abet this young
man to marry out of his class--"

"Stuff," said Tuppence. "Janet is a splendid girl--and the queer thing
is that she really adores that weak kneed young man. You can see with
half a glance what _his_ family needs. Some good red blood in it.
Janet will be the making of him. She'll look after him like a mother,
ease down the cocktails and the night clubs and make him lead a good
healthy country gentleman's life. Come and meet her."

Tuppence opened the door of the adjoining office and Tommy followed her.

A tall girl with lovely auburn hair, and a pleasant face, put down the
steaming kettle in her hand, and turned with a smile that disclosed an
even row of white teeth.

"I hope you'll forgive me, Nurse Cowley--Mrs. Beresford, I mean.
I thought that very likely you'd be quite ready for a cup of tea
yourself. Many's the pot of tea you've made for me in the Hospital at
three o'clock in the morning."

"Tommy," said Tuppence. "Let me introduce you to my old friend, Nurse
Smith."

"Smith, did you say? How curious!" said Tommy, shaking hands. "Eh? Oh!
nothing--a little monograph that I was thinking of writing."

"Pull yourself together, Tommy," said Tuppence.

She poured him out a cup of tea.

"Now, then, let's all drink together. Here's to the success of the
International Detective Agency. Blunt's Brilliant Detectives! May they
never know failure!"




                              CHAPTER III

                     THE AFFAIR OF THE PINK PEARL


"What on earth are you doing?" demanded Tuppence, as she entered the
inner sanctum of the International Detective Agency--(Slogan--Blunt's
Brilliant Detectives) and discovered her lord and master prone on the
floor in a sea of books.

Tommy struggled to his feet.

"I was trying to arrange these books on the top shelf of that
cupboard," he complained. "And the damned chair gave way."

"What are they, anyway?" asked Tuppence, picking up a volume. "'The
Hound of the Baskervilles.' I wouldn't mind reading that again some
time."

"You see the idea?" said Tommy, dusting himself with care. "Half hours
with the Great Masters--that sort of thing. You see, Tuppence, I can't
help feeling that we are more or less amateurs at this business--of
course amateurs in one sense we cannot help being, but it would do no
harm to acquire the technique, so to speak. These books are detective
stories by the leading masters of the art. I intend to try different
styles, and compare results."

"H'm," said Tuppence. "I often wonder how those detectives would have
got on in real life." She picked up another volume. "You'll find a
difficulty in being a Thorndyke. You've no medical experience, and less
legal, and I never heard that science was your strong point."

"Perhaps not," said Tommy. "But at any rate I've bought a very good
camera, and I shall photograph footprints and enlarge the negatives and
all that sort of thing. Now, mon ami, use your little grey cells--what
does this convey to you?"

He pointed to the bottom shelf of the cupboard. On it lay a somewhat
futuristic dressing gown, a turkish slipper, and a violin.

"Obvious, my dear Watson," said Tuppence.

"Exactly," said Tommy. "The Sherlock Holmes touch."

He took up the violin and drew the bow idly across the strings, causing
Tuppence to give a wail of agony.

At that moment the buzzer rang on the desk, a sign that a client had
arrived in the outer office and was being held in parley by Albert, the
office boy.

Tommy hastily replaced the violin in the cupboard and kicked the books
behind the desk.

"Not that there's any great hurry," he remarked. "Albert will be
handing them out the stuff about my being engaged with Scotland Yard on
the phone. Get into your office and start typing, Tuppence. It makes
the office sound busy and active. No, on second thoughts, you shall be
taking notes in shorthand from my dictation. Let's have a look before
we get Albert to send the victim in."

They approached the peephole which had been artistically contrived so
as to command a view of the outer office.

The client was a girl of about Tuppence's age, tall and dark with a
rather haggard face and scornful eyes.

"Clothes cheap and striking," remarked Tuppence. "Have her in, Tommy."

In another minute the girl was shaking hands with the celebrated Mr.
Blunt, whilst Tuppence sat by with eyes demurely downcast, and pad and
pencil in hand.

"My confidential secretary, Miss Robinson," said Mr. Blunt with a wave
of the hand. "You may speak freely before her." Then he lay back for a
minute, half closed his eyes and remarked in a tired tone: "You must
find traveling in a bus very crowded at this time of day."

"I came in a taxi," said the girl.

"Oh!" said Tommy aggrieved. His eyes rested reproachfully on a blue bus
ticket protruding from her glove. The girl's eyes followed his glance,
and she smiled and drew it out.

"You mean this? I picked it up on the pavement. A little neighbor of
ours collects them."

Tuppence coughed, and Tommy threw a baleful glare at her.

"We must get to business," he said briskly. "You are in need of our
services, Miss--?"

"Kingston Bruce is my name," said the girl. "We live at Wimbledon. Last
night a lady who is staying with us lost a valuable pink pearl. Mr.
St. Vincent was also dining with us, and during dinner he happened to
mention your firm. My mother sent me off to you this morning to ask you
if you would look into the matter for us."

The girl spoke sullenly, almost disagreeably. It was clear as daylight
that she and her mother had not agreed over the matter. She was here
under protest.

"I see," said Tommy, a little puzzled. "You have not called in the
police?"

"No," said Miss Kingston Bruce, "we haven't. It would be idiotic to
call in the police and then find that the silly thing had rolled under
the fireplace, or something like that."

"Oh!" said Tommy. "Then the jewel may only be lost after all?"

Miss Kingston Bruce shrugged her shoulders.

"People make such a fuss about things," she murmured.

Tommy cleared his throat.

"Of course," he said doubtfully. "I am extremely busy just now--"

"I quite understand," said the girl rising to her feet. There was a
quick gleam of satisfaction in her eyes which Tuppence, for one, did
not miss.

"Nevertheless," continued Tommy, "I think I can manage to run down to
Wimbledon. Will you give me the address, please?"

"The Laurels, Edgeworth Road."

"Make a note of it, please, Miss Robinson."

Miss Kingston Bruce hesitated, then said rather ungraciously:

"We'll expect you then. Good morning."

"Funny girl," said Tommy. "I couldn't quite make her out."

"I wonder if she stole the thing herself," remarked Tuppence
meditatively. "Come on, Tommy, let's put away these books and take the
car and go down there. By the way, who are you going to be, Sherlock
Holmes still?"

"I think I need practice for that," said Tommy. "I came rather a
cropper over that bus ticket, didn't I?"

"You did," said Tuppence. "If I were you I shouldn't try too much on
that girl--she's as sharp as a needle. She's unhappy too, poor devil."

"I suppose you know all about her already," said Tommy with sarcasm,
"simply from looking at the shape of her nose!"

"I'll tell you my idea of what we shall find at The Laurels," said
Tuppence, quite unmoved. "A household of snobs, very keen to move in
the best society; the father, if there is a father, is sure to have a
military title. The girl falls in with their way of life and despises
herself for doing so."

Tommy took a last look at the books now neatly arranged upon a shelf.

"I think," he said thoughtfully, "that I shall be Thorndyke to-day."

"I shouldn't have thought there was anything medico-legal about this
case," remarked Tuppence.

"Perhaps not," said Tommy. "But I'm simply dying to use that new camera
of mine! It's supposed to have the most marvelous lens that ever was or
ever could be."

"I know those kind of lenses," said Tuppence. "By the time you've
adjusted the shutter and stopped down and calculated the exposure and
kept your eyes on the spirit level, your brain gives out, and you yearn
for the simple Brownie."

"Only an unambitious soul is content with the simple Brownie."

"Well, I bet I shall get better results with it than you will."

Tommy ignored this challenge.

"I ought to have a 'Smoker's Companion,'" he said regretfully. "I
wonder where one buys them?"

"There's always the patent corkscrew Aunt Araminta gave you last Xmas,"
said Tuppence helpfully.

"That's true," said Tommy. "A curious looking engine of destruction I
thought it at the time, and rather a humorous present to get from a
strictly teetotal aunt."

"I," said Tuppence, "shall be Polton."

Tommy looked at her scornfully.

"Polton indeed. You couldn't begin to do one of the things that he
does."

"Yes, I can," said Tuppence. "I can rub my hands together when I'm
pleased. That's quite enough to get on with. I hope you're going to
take plaster casts of footprints?"

Tommy was reduced to silence. Having collected the corkscrew they went
round to the garage, got out the car and started for Wimbledon.

The Laurels was a big house. It ran somewhat to gables and turrets, had
an air of being very newly painted, and was surrounded with neat flower
beds filled with scarlet geraniums.

A tall man with a close cropped white moustache, and an exaggeratedly
martial bearing opened the door before Tommy had time to ring.

"I've been looking out for you," he explained fussily. "Mr. Blunt, is
it not? I am Colonel Kingston Bruce. Will you come into my study?"

He led them into a small room at the back of the house.

"Young St. Vincent was telling me wonderful things about your firm.
I've noticed your advertisements myself. This guaranteed twenty-four
hours service of yours--a marvelous notion. That's exactly what I need."

Inwardly anathematizing Tuppence for her irresponsibility in inventing
this brilliant detail, Tommy replied: "Just so, Colonel."

"The whole thing is most distressing, sir, most distressing."

"Perhaps you would kindly give me the facts," said Tommy, with a hint
of impatience.

"Certainly I will--at once. We have at the present moment staying with
us a very old and dear friend of ours, Lady Laura Barton. Daughter
of the late Earl of Carrowway. The present Earl, her brother, made a
striking speech in the House of Lords the other day. As I say, she is
an old and dear friend of ours. Some American friends of mine who have
just come over, the Hamilton Betts, were most anxious to meet her.
'Nothing easier,' I said. 'She is staying with me now. Come down for
the week-end.' You know what Americans are about titles, Mr. Blunt."

"And others besides Americans sometimes, Colonel Kingston Bruce."

"Alas! only too true, my dear sir. Nothing I hate more than a snob.
Well, as I was saying, the Betts came down for the week-end. Last
night--we were playing Bridge at the time--the clasp of a pendant Mrs.
Hamilton Betts was wearing broke, so she took it off and laid it down
on a small table, meaning to take it upstairs with her when she went.
This, however, she forgot to do. I must explain, Mr. Blunt, that the
pendant consisted of two small diamond wings, and a big pink pearl
depending from them. The pendant was found this morning lying where
Mrs. Betts had left it, but the pearl, a pearl of enormous value, had
been wrenched off."

"Who found the pendant?"

"The parlormaid--Gladys Hill."

"Any reason to suspect her?"

"She has been with us some years, and we have always found her
perfectly honest. But, of course, one never knows--"

"Exactly. Will you describe your staff, and also tell me who was
present at dinner last night?"

"There is the cook--she has been with us only two months, but then she
would have no occasion to go near the drawing-room--the same applies to
the kitchen maid. Then there is the housemaid, Alice Cummings. She also
has been with us for some years. And Lady Laura's maid, of course. She
is French."

Colonel Kingston Bruce looked very impressive as he said this. Tommy,
unaffected by the revelation of the maid's nationality, said: "Exactly.
And the party at dinner?"

"Mr. and Mrs. Betts, ourselves--(my wife and daughter)--and Lady Laura.
Young St. Vincent was dining with us, and Mr. Rennie looked in after
dinner for a while."

"Who is Mr. Rennie?"

"A most pestilential fellow--an arrant socialist. Good looking, of
course, and with a certain specious power of argument. But a man, I
don't mind telling you, whom I wouldn't trust a yard. A dangerous sort
of fellow."

"In fact," said Tommy drily, "it is Mr. Rennie whom you suspect?"

"I do, Mr. Blunt. I'm sure, holding the views he does, that he can have
no principles whatsoever. What could have been easier for him than
to have quietly wrenched off the pearl at a moment when we were all
absorbed in our game? There were several absorbing moments--a redoubled
No Trump hand, I remember, and also a painful argument when my wife had
the misfortune to revoke."

"Quite so," said Tommy. "I should just like to know one thing--what is
Mrs. Betts' attitude in all this?"

"She wanted me to call in the police," said Colonel Kingston Bruce
reluctantly. "That is, when we had searched everywhere in case the
pearl had only dropped off."

"But you dissuaded her?"

"I was very averse to the idea of publicity and my wife and daughter
backed me up. Then my wife remembered young St. Vincent speaking about
your firm at dinner last night--and the twenty-four hours special
service."

"Yes," said Tommy with a heavy heart.

"You see, in any case no harm will be done. If we call in the police
to-morrow, it can be supposed that we thought the jewel merely lost and
were hunting for it. By the way, nobody has been allowed to leave the
house this morning."

"Except your daughter, of course," said Tuppence, speaking for the
first time.

"Except my daughter," agreed the Colonel. "She volunteered at once to
go and put the case before you."

Tommy rose.

"We will do our best to give you satisfaction, Colonel," he said. "I
should like to see the drawing-room, and the table on which the pendant
was laid down. I should also like to ask Mrs. Betts a few questions.
After that, I will interview the servants--or rather my assistant, Miss
Robinson, will do so."

He felt his nerve quailing before the terrors of questioning the
servants.

Colonel Kingston Bruce threw open the door, and led them across the
hall. As he did so, a remark came to them clearly through the open door
of the room they were approaching, and the voice that uttered it was
that of the girl who had come to see them that morning.

"You know perfectly well, mother," she was saying, "that she _did_
bring home a teaspoon in her muff."

In another minute they were being introduced to Mrs. Kingston Bruce, a
plaintive lady with a languid manner. Miss Kingston Bruce acknowledged
their presence with a short inclination of the head. Her face was more
sullen than ever.

Mrs. Kingston Bruce was voluble.

"--but I know who _I_ think took it," she ended. "That dreadful
socialist young man. He loves the Russians and the Germans and hates
the English--what else can you expect?"

"He never touched it," said Miss Kingston Bruce fiercely. "I was
watching him--all the time. I couldn't have failed to see if he had."

She looked at them defiantly with her chin up.

Tommy created a diversion by asking for an interview with Mrs. Betts.
When Mrs. Kingston Bruce had departed accompanied by her husband and
daughter to find Mrs. Betts, he whistled thoughtfully.

"I wonder," he said gently, "who it was who had a teaspoon in her muff?"

"Just what I was thinking," replied Tuppence.

Mrs. Betts, followed by her husband, burst into the room. She was a big
woman with a determined voice. Mr. Hamilton Betts looked dyspeptic and
subdued.

"I understand, Mr. Blunt, that you are a private inquiry agent, and one
who hustles things through at a great rate?"

"Hustle," said Tommy, "is my middle name, Mrs. Betts. Let me ask you a
few questions."

Thereafter things proceeded rapidly. Tommy was shown the damaged
pendant, the table on which it had lain, and Mr. Betts emerged from his
taciturnity to mention the value, in dollars, of the stolen pearl.

And withal, Tommy felt an irritating certainty that he was not getting
on.

"I think that will do," he said at length. "Miss Robinson, will you
kindly fetch the special photographic apparatus from the hall?"

Miss Robinson complied.

"A little invention of my own," said Tommy. "In appearance, you see, it
is just like an ordinary camera."

He had some slight satisfaction in seeing that the Betts were impressed.

He photographed the pendant, the table on which it had lain, and
took several general views of the apartment. Then "Miss Robinson"
was delegated to interview the servants, and in view of the eager
expectancy on the faces of Colonel Kingston Bruce and Mrs. Betts, Tommy
felt called upon to say a few authoritative words.

"The position amounts to this," he said. "Either the pearl is still in
the house, or it is not still in the house."

"Quite so," said the Colonel with more respect than was, perhaps, quite
justified by the nature of the remark.

"If it is not in the house, it may be anywhere--but if it is in the
house, it must necessarily be concealed somewhere--"

"And a search must be made," broke in Colonel Kingston Bruce. "Quite
so. I give you carte blanche, Mr. Blunt. Search the house from attic to
cellar."

"Oh! Charles," murmured Mrs. Kingston Bruce tearfully. "Do you think
that is wise? The servants won't _like_ it. I'm sure they'll leave."

"We will search their quarters last," said Tommy soothingly. "The thief
is sure to have hidden the gem in the most unlikely place."

"I seem to have read something of the kind," agreed the Colonel.

"Quite so," said Tommy. "You probably remember the case of Rex. _v._
Bailey which created a precedent."

"Oh--er--yes," said the Colonel looking puzzled.

"Now, the most unlikely place is in the apartments of Mrs. Betts,"
continued Tommy.

"My! Wouldn't that be too cute?" said Mrs. Betts admiringly.

Without more ado, she took him up to her room where Tommy once more
made use of the special photographic apparatus.

Presently Tuppence joined him there.

"You have no objection, I hope, Mrs. Betts, to my assistant's looking
through your wardrobe?"

"Why, not at all. Do you need me here any longer?"

Tommy assured her that there was no need to detain her, and Mrs. Betts
departed.

"We might as well go on bluffing it out," said Tommy. "But personally I
don't believe we've a dog's chance of finding the thing. Curse you and
your twenty-four hours stunt, Tuppence."

"Listen," said Tuppence. "The servants are all right, I'm sure, but
I managed to get something out of the French maid. It seems that when
Lady Laura was staying here a year ago, she went out to tea with some
friends of the Kingston Bruces', and when she got home a teaspoon fell
out of her muff. Everyone thought it must have fallen in by accident.
But, talking about similar robberies, I got hold of a lot more. Lady
Laura is always staying about with people. She hasn't got a bean, I
gather, and she's out for comfortable quarters with people to whom a
title still means something. It may be a coincidence--or it may be
something more, but five distinct thefts have taken place whilst she
has been staying in various houses, sometimes trivial things, sometimes
valuable jewels."

"Whew!" said Tommy, and gave vent to a prolonged whistle. "Where's the
old bird's room, do you know?"

"Just across the passage."

"Then I think, I rather think, that we'll just slip across and
investigate."

The room opposite stood with its door ajar. It was a spacious
apartment, with white enameled fitments and rose pink curtains. An
inner door led to a bathroom. At the door of this appeared a slim dark
girl, very neatly dressed.

Tuppence checked the exclamation of astonishment on the girl's lips.

"This is Elise, Mr. Blunt," she said primly. "Lady Laura's maid."

Tommy stepped across the threshold of the bathroom, and approved
inwardly its sumptuous and up to date fittings. He set to work to
dispel the wide stare of suspicion on the French girl's face.

"You are busy with your duties, eh, Mademoiselle Elise?"

"Yes, Monsieur, I clean Milady's bath."

"Well, perhaps you'll help me with some photography instead. I have a
special kind of camera here, and I am photographing the interiors of
all the rooms in this house."

He was interrupted by the communicating door to the bedroom banging
suddenly behind him. Elise jumped at the sound.

"What did that?"

"It must have been the wind," said Tuppence.

"We will come into the other room," said Tommy.

Elise went to open the door for them, but the door knob rattled
aimlessly.

"What's the matter?" said Tommy sharply.

"Ah, Monsieur, but someone must have locked it on the other side." She
caught up a towel and tried again. But this time the door handle turned
easily enough, and the door swung open.

"_Voilà ce qui est curieux._ It must have stuck," said Elise.

There was no one in the bedroom.

Tommy fetched his apparatus. Tuppence and Elise worked under his
orders. But again and again his glance went back to the communicating
door.

"I wonder," he said between his teeth. "I wonder why that door stuck?"

He examined it minutely, shutting and opening it. It fitted perfectly.

"One picture more," he said with a sigh. "Will you loop back that rose
curtain, Mademoiselle Elise? Thank you. Just hold it so."

The familiar click occurred. He handed a glass slide to Elise to hold,
relinquished the tripod to Tuppence, and carefully readjusted and
closed the camera.

He made some easy excuse to get rid of Elise, and as soon as she was
out of the room, he caught hold of Tuppence and spoke rapidly.

"Look here, I've got an idea. Can you hang on here? Search all the
rooms--that will take some time. Try and get an interview with the
old bird--Lady Laura--but don't alarm her. Tell her you suspect the
parlormaid. But whatever you do, don't let her leave the house. I'm
going off in the car. I'll be back as soon as I can."

"All right," said Tuppence. "But don't be too cocksure. You've
forgotten one thing."

"What's that?"

"The girl. There's something funny about that girl. Listen, I've found
out the time she started from the house this morning. It took her two
hours to get to our office. That's nonsense. Where did she go before
she came to us?"

"There's something in that," admitted her husband. "Well, follow up
any old clue you like, but don't let Lady Laura leave the house. What's
that?"

His quick ear had caught a faint rustle outside on the landing. He
strode across to the door, but there was no one to be seen.

"Well, so long," he said. "I'll be back as soon as I can."




                              CHAPTER IV

               THE AFFAIR OF THE PINK PEARL (continued)


Tuppence watched him drive off in the car with a faint misgiving. Tommy
was very sure--she herself was not so sure. There were one or two
things she did not quite understand.

She was still standing by the window, watching the road, when she saw
a man leave the shelter of a gateway opposite, cross the road and ring
the bell.

In a flash Tuppence was out of the room and down the stairs. Gladys
Hill, the parlormaid, was emerging from the back part of the house, but
Tuppence motioned her back authoritatively. Then she went to the front
door and opened it.

A lanky young man with ill-fitting clothes, and eager dark eyes was
standing on the step.

He hesitated a moment, and then said, "Is Miss Kingston Bruce in?"

"Will you come inside?" said Tuppence.

She stood aside to let him enter, closing the door.

"Mr. Rennie, I think?" she said sweetly.

He shot a quick glance at her.

"Er--yes."

"Will you come in here, please?"

She opened the study door. The room was empty, and Tuppence entered it
after him, closing the door behind her. He turned on her with a frown.

"I want to see Miss Kingston Bruce."

"I am not quite sure that you can," said Tuppence composedly.

"Look here, who the devil are you?" said Mr. Rennie rudely.

"International Detective Agency," said Tuppence succinctly--and noticed
Mr. Rennie's uncontrollable start.

"Please sit down, Mr. Rennie," she went on. "To begin with, we know all
about Miss Kingston Bruce's visit to you this morning."

It was a bold guess, but it succeeded. Perceiving his consternation,
Tuppence went on quickly.

"The recovery of the pearl is the great thing, Mr. Rennie. No one
in this house is anxious for--publicity. Can't we come to some
arrangement?"

The young man looked at her keenly.

"I wonder how much you know," he said thoughtfully. "Let me think for a
moment."

He buried his head in his hands--then asked a most unexpected question.

"I say, is it really true that young St. Vincent is engaged to be
married?"

"Quite true," said Tuppence. "I know the girl."

Mr. Rennie suddenly became confidential.

"It's been hell," he confided. "They've been asking him here morning,
noon and night--chucking Beatrice at his head. All because he'll come
into a title some day. If I had my way--"

"Don't let's talk politics," said Tuppence hastily. "Do you mind
telling me, Mr. Rennie, why you think Miss Kingston Bruce took the
pearl?"

"I--I don't."

"You do," said Tuppence calmly. "You wait to see the detective, as you
think, drive off and the coast clear, and then you come and ask for
her. It's obvious. If you'd taken the pearl yourself, you wouldn't be
half so upset."

"Her manner was so odd," said the young man. "She came this morning and
told me about the robbery, explaining that she was on her way to a firm
of private detectives. She seemed anxious to say something, and yet not
able to get it out."

"Well," said Tuppence. "All I want is the pearl. You'd better go and
talk to her."

But at that moment Colonel Kingston Bruce opened the door.

"Lunch is ready, Miss Robinson. You will lunch with us, I hope. The--"

Then he stopped and glared at the guest.

"Clearly," said Mr. Rennie, "you don't want to ask me to lunch. All
right, I'll go."

"Come back later," whispered Tuppence, as he passed her.

Tuppence followed Colonel Kingston Bruce, still growling into his
moustache about the pestilential impudence of some people, into a
massive dining-room where the family was already assembled. Only one
person present was unknown to Tuppence.

"This, Lady Laura, is Miss Robinson who is kindly assisting us."

Lady Laura bent her head, and then proceeded to stare at Tuppence
through her pince nez. She was a tall, thin woman, with a sad smile, a
gentle voice, and very hard shrewd eyes. Tuppence returned her stare,
and Lady Laura's eyes dropped.

After lunch Lady Laura entered into conversation with an air of gentle
curiosity. How was the inquiry proceeding? Tuppence laid suitable
stress on the suspicion attaching to the parlormaid, but her mind was
not really on Lady Laura. Lady Laura might conceal teaspoons and other
articles in her clothing, but Tuppence felt fairly sure that she had
not taken the pink pearl.

Presently Tuppence proceeded with her search of the house. Time was
going on. There was no sign of Tommy, and, what mattered far more to
Tuppence, there was no sign of Mr. Rennie. Suddenly Tuppence came out
of a bedroom and collided with Beatrice Kingston Bruce who was going
down stairs. She was fully dressed for the street.

"I'm afraid," said Tuppence, "that you mustn't go out just now."

The other girl looked at her haughtily.

"Whether I go out or not is no business of yours," she said coldly.

"It is my business whether I communicate with the police or not,
though," said Tuppence.

In a minute the girl had turned ashy pale.

"You mustn't--you mustn't--I won't go out--but don't do that." She
clung to Tuppence beseechingly.

"My dear Miss Kingston Bruce," said Tuppence smiling. "The case has
been perfectly clear to me from the start--I--"

But she was interrupted. In the stress of her encounter with the girl,
Tuppence had not heard the front door bell. Now, to her astonishment,
Tommy came bounding up the stairs, and in the hall below she caught
sight of a big burly man in the act of removing a bowler hat.

"Detective Inspector Marriot of Scotland Yard," he said with a grin.

With a cry, Beatrice Kingston Bruce tore herself from Tuppence's grasp
and dashed down the stairs, just as the front door was opened once more
to admit Mr. Rennie.

"Now you _have_ torn it," said Tuppence bitterly.

"Eh?" said Tommy, hurrying into Lady Laura's room. He passed on into
the bathroom, and picked up a large cake of soap which he brought out
in his hands. The Inspector was just mounting the stairs.

"She went quite quietly," he announced. "She's an old hand, and knows
when the game is up. What about the pearl?"

"I rather fancy," said Tommy, handing him the soap, "that you'll find
it in here."

The Inspector's eyes lit up appreciatively.

"An old trick, and a good one. Cut a cake of soap in half, scoop out a
place for the jewel, clap it together again, and smooth the joint well
over with hot water. A very smart piece of work on your part, sir."

Tommy accepted the compliment gracefully. He and Tuppence descended the
stairs. Colonel Kingston Bruce rushed at him and shook him warmly by
the hand.

"My dear sir, I can't thank you enough. Lady Laura wants to thank you
also--"

"I am glad we have given you satisfaction," said Tommy. "But I'm afraid
I can't stop. I have a most urgent appointment. Member of the Cabinet."

He hurried out to the car and jumped in. Tuppence jumped in beside him.

"But Tommy," she cried. "Haven't they arrested Lady Laura, after all?"

"Oh!" said Tommy. "Didn't I tell you? They've not arrested Lady Laura.
They've arrested Elise."

"You see," he went on, as Tuppence sat dumbfounded, "I've often tried
to open a door with soap on my hands myself. It can't be done--your
hands slip. So I wondered what Elise could have been doing with the
soap to get her hands as soapy as all that. She caught up a towel, you
remember, so there were no traces of soap on the handle afterwards. But
it occurred to me that if you were a professional thief, it wouldn't
be a bad plan to be maid to a lady suspected of kleptomania who stayed
about a good deal in different houses. So I managed to get a photo
of her as well as of the room, induced her to handle a glass slide
and toddled off to dear old Scotland Yard. Lightning development of
negative, successful identification of fingerprints--and photo. Elise
was a long lost friend. Useful place, Scotland Yard."

"And to think," said Tuppence, finding her voice, "that those two young
idiots were only suspecting each other in that weak way they do it in
books. But why didn't you tell me what you were up to when you went
off?"

"In the first place, I suspected that Elise was listening on the
landing, and in the second place--"

"Yes?"

"My learned friend forgets," said Tommy. "Thorndyke never tells until
the last moment. Besides, Tuppence, you and your pal Janet Smith put
one over on me last time. This makes us all square."




                               CHAPTER V

                THE ADVENTURE OF THE SINISTER STRANGER


"It's been a darned dull day," said Tommy, and yawned widely.

"Nearly tea time," said Tuppence and also yawned.

Business was not brisk in the International Detective Agency. The
eagerly expected letter from the ham merchant had not arrived and bona
fide cases were not forthcoming.

Albert, the office boy, entered with a sealed package which he laid on
the table.

"The Mystery of the Sealed Packet," murmured Tommy. "Did it contain the
fabulous pearls of the Russian Grand Duchess? Or was it an infernal
machine destined to blow Blunt's Brilliant Detectives to pieces?"

"As a matter of fact," said Tuppence, tearing open the package, "it's
my wedding present to Francis Haviland. Rather nice, isn't it?"

Tommy took a slender silver cigarette case from her outstretched hand,
noted the inscription engraved in her own handwriting: _Francis from
Tuppence_, opened and shut the case, and nodded approvingly.

"You do throw your money about, Tuppence," he remarked. "I'll have one
like it, only in gold, for my birthday next month. Fancy wasting a
thing like that on Francis Haviland, who always was and always will be
one of the most perfect asses God ever made!"

"You forget I used to drive him about during the War, when he was a
General. Ah! those were the good old days."

"They were," agreed Tommy. "Beautiful women used to come and squeeze
my hand in Hospital, I remember. But I don't send them all wedding
presents. I don't believe the bride will care much for this gift of
yours, Tuppence."

"It's nice and slim for the pocket, isn't it?" said Tuppence
disregarding his remarks.

Tommy slipped it into his own pocket.

"Just right," he said approvingly. "Hullo, here is Albert with
the afternoon post. Very possibly the Duchess of Perthshire is
commissioning us to find her prize Peke."

They sorted through the letters together. Suddenly Tommy gave vent to a
prolonged whistle, and held up one of them in his hand.

"A blue letter with a Russian stamp on it. Do you remember what the
Chief said? We were to look out for letters like that."

"How exciting," said Tuppence. "Something has happened at last. Open it
and see if the contents are up to schedule. A ham merchant, wasn't it?
Half a minute. We shall want some milk for tea. They forgot to leave it
this morning. I'll send Albert out for it."

She returned from the outer office, after despatching Albert on his
errand, to find Tommy holding the blue sheet of paper in his hand.

"As we thought, Tuppence," he remarked. "Almost word for word what the
Chief said."

Tuppence took the letter from him and read it.

It was couched in careful stilted English, and purported to be from
one Gregor Feodorsky who was anxious for news of his wife. The
International Detective Agency was urged to spare no expense in doing
their utmost to trace her. Feodorsky himself was unable to leave Russia
at the moment owing to a crisis in the Pork trade.

"I wonder what it really means," said Tuppence thoughtfully, smoothing
out the sheet on the table in front of her.

"Code of some kind, I suppose," said Tommy. "That's not our business.
Our business is to hand it over to the Chief as soon as possible.
Better just verify it by soaking off the stamp and seeing if the number
16 is underneath."

"All right," said Tuppence. "But I should think--"

She stopped dead, and Tommy, surprised by her sudden pause, looked up
to see a man's burly figure blocking the doorway.

The intruder was a man of commanding presence, squarely built, with a
very round head and a powerful jaw. He might have been about forty-five
years of age.

"I must beg your pardon," said the stranger, advancing into the room,
hat in hand. "I found your outer office empty, and this door open, so I
ventured to intrude. This is Blunt's International Detective Agency, is
it not?"

"Certainly it is."

"And you are, perhaps, Mr. Blunt? Mr. Theodore Blunt?"

"I am Mr. Blunt. You wished to consult me? This is my secretary, Miss
Robinson."

Tuppence inclined her head gracefully, but continued to scrutinise the
stranger narrowly through her downcast eyelashes. She was wondering how
long he had been standing in the doorway, and how much he had seen and
heard. It did not escape her observation that even while he was talking
to Tommy, his eyes kept coming back to the blue paper in her hand.

Tommy's voice, sharp with a warning note, recalled her to the needs of
the moment.

"Miss Robinson, please, take notes. Now, sir, will you kindly state the
matter on which you wish to have my advice?"

Tuppence reached for her pad and pencil.

The big man began in rather a harsh voice.

"My name is Bower. Dr. Charles Bower. I live in Hampstead where I have
a practice. I have come to you, Mr. Blunt, because several rather
strange occurrences have happened lately."

"Yes, Dr. Bower?"

"Twice in the course of the last week, I have been summoned by
telephone to an urgent case--in each case to find that the summons
has been a fake. The first time I thought a practical joke had been
played upon me, but on my return the second time, I found that some
of my private papers had been displaced and disarranged, and I now
believe that the same thing had happened the first time. I made an
exhaustive search and came to the conclusion that my whole desk had
been thoroughly ransacked, and the various papers replaced hurriedly."

Dr. Bower paused, and gazed at Tommy.

"Well, Mr. Blunt?"

"Well, Dr. Bower," replied the young man smiling.

"What do you think of it, eh?"

"Well, first I should like the facts. What do you keep in your desk?"

"My private papers."

"Exactly. Now, what do those private papers consist of? What value are
they to the common thief--or any particular person?"

"To the common thief I cannot see that they would have any value at
all, but my notes on certain obscure alkaloids would be of interest
to anyone possessed of technical knowledge on the subject. I have
been making a study of such matters for the last few years. These
alkaloids are deadly and virulent poisons, and are, in addition, almost
untraceable. They yield no known reactions."

"The secret of them would be worth money, then?"

"To unscrupulous persons, yes."

"And you suspect--whom?"

The doctor shrugged his massive shoulders.

"As far as I can tell, the house was not entered forcibly from the
outside. That seems to point to some member of my household, and yet
I cannot believe--" He broke off abruptly, then began again, his face
very grave.

"Mr. Blunt, I must place myself in your hands unreservedly. I dare
not go to the police in the matter. Of my three servants I am almost
entirely sure. They have served me long and faithfully. Still, one
never knows. Then I have living with me my two nephews, Bertram and
Henry. Henry is a good boy--a very good boy--he has never caused me
any anxiety, an excellent hard-working young fellow. Bertram, I regret
to say, is of quite a different character--wild, extravagant, and
persistently idle."

"I see," said Tommy thoughtfully. "You suspect your nephew Bertram of
being mixed up in this business. Now I don't agree with you. I suspect
the good boy--Henry."

"But why?"

"Tradition. Precedent." Tommy waved his hand airily. "In my experience,
the suspicious characters are always innocent--and vice versa, my dear
sir. Yes, decidedly, I suspect Henry."

"Excuse me, Mr. Blunt," said Tuppence, interrupting in a deferential
voice. "Did I understand Dr. Bower to say that these notes
on--er--obscure alkaloids--are kept in the desk with the other papers?"

"They are kept in the desk, my dear young lady, but in a secret drawer,
the position of which is known only to myself. Hence they have so far
defied the search."

"And what exactly do you want me to do, Dr. Bower?" asked Tommy. "Do
you anticipate that a further search will be made?"

"I do, Mr. Blunt. I have every reason to believe so. This afternoon,
I received a telegram from a patient of mine whom I ordered to
Bournemouth a few weeks ago. The telegram states that my patient is
in a critical condition, and begs me to come down at once. Rendered
suspicious by the events I have told you of, I myself despatched a
telegram, prepaid, to the patient in question, and elicited the fact
that he was in good health and had sent no summons to me of any kind.
It occurred to me that if I pretended to have been taken in, and duly
departed to Bournemouth, we should have a very good chance of finding
the miscreants at work. They--or he--will doubtless wait until the
household has retired to bed before commencing operations. I suggest
that you should meet me outside my house at eleven o'clock this
evening, and we will investigate the matter together."

"Hoping, in fact, to catch them in the act." Tommy drummed thoughtfully
on the table with a paper knife. "Your plan seems to me an excellent
one, Dr. Bower. I cannot see any hitch in it. Let me see, your address
is--?"

"The Larches, Hangman's Lane--rather a lonely part, I am afraid. But we
command magnificent views over the Heath."

"Quite so," said Tommy.

The visitor rose.

"Then I shall expect you to-night, Mr. Blunt. Outside The Larches
at--shall we say, five minutes to eleven--to be on the safe side?"

"Certainly. Five minutes to eleven. Good afternoon, Dr. Bower."

Tommy rose, pressed the buzzer on his desk, and Albert appeared to show
the client out. The doctor walked with a decided limp, but his powerful
physique was evident in spite of it.

"An ugly customer to tackle," murmured Tommy to himself. "Well,
Tuppence, old girl, what do you think of it?"

"I'll tell you in one word," said Tuppence. "_Clubfoot!_"

"What?"

"I said Clubfoot! My study of the Classics has not been in vain. Tommy,
this thing's a plant. Obscure alkaloids indeed--I never heard a weaker
story."

"Even I did not find it very convincing," admitted her husband.

"Did you see his eyes on the letter? Tommy, he's one of the gang.
They've got wise to the fact that you're not the real Mr. Blunt, and
they're out for our blood."

"In that case," said Tommy, opening the side cupboard, and surveying
his rows of books with an affectionate eye. "Our rôle is easy to
select. We are the brothers Okewood! And I am Desmond," he added firmly.

Tuppence shrugged her shoulders.

"All right. Have it your own way. I'd just as soon be Francis. Francis
was much the more intelligent of the two. Desmond always gets into a
mess, and Francis turns up as the gardener or something in the nick of
time, and saves the situation."

"Ah!" said Tommy, "but I shall be a super Desmond! When I arrive at The
Larches--"

Tuppence interrupted him unceremoniously.

"You're not going to Hampstead to-night?"

"Why not?"

"Walk into a trap with your eyes shut!"

"No, my dear girl, walk into a trap with my eyes open. There's a lot of
difference. I think our friend Dr. Bower will get a little surprise."

"I don't like it," said Tuppence. "You know what happens when Desmond
disobeys the Chief's orders, and acts on his own. Our orders were quite
clear. To send on the letters at once and to report immediately on
anything that happened."

"You've not got it quite right," said Tommy. "We were to report
immediately if anyone came in and mentioned the number 16. Nobody has."

"That's a quibble," said Tuppence.

"It's no good. I've got a fancy for playing a lone hand. My dear old
Tuppence, I shall be all right. I shall go armed to the teeth. The
essence of the whole thing is that I shall be on my guard and they
won't know it. The Chief will be patting me on the back for a good
night's work."

"Well," said Tuppence. "I don't like it. That man's as strong as a
gorilla."

"Ah!" said Tommy, "but think of my blue-nosed automatic."

The door of the outer office opened and Albert appeared. Closing the
door behind him, he approached them with an envelope in his hand.

"A gentleman to see you," said Albert. "When I began the usual stunt
of saying you were engaged with Scotland Yard, he told me he knew all
about that. Said he came from Scotland Yard himself! And he wrote
something on a card and stuck it up in this envelope."

Tommy took the envelope and opened it. As he read the card, a grin
passed across his face.

"The gentleman was amusing himself at your expense by speaking the
truth, Albert," he remarked. "Show him in."

He tossed the card to Tuppence. It bore the name Detective Inspector
Dymchurch, and across it was scrawled in pencil--"A friend of
Marriot's."

In another minute the Scotland Yard detective was entering the inner
office. In appearance, Inspector Dymchurch was of the same type as
Inspector Marriot, short and thick set, with shrewd eyes.

"Good afternoon," said the detective breezily. "Marriot's away in South
Wales, but before he went, he asked me to keep an eye on you two, and
on this place in general. Oh! bless you, sir," he went on, as Tommy
seemed about to interrupt him, "_we_ know all about it. It's not our
department, and we don't interfere. But somebody's got wise lately to
the fact that all is not what it seems. You've had a gentleman here
this afternoon. I don't know what he called himself, and I don't know
what his real name is, but I know just a little about him. Enough to
want to know more. Am I right in assuming that he made a date with you
for some particular spot this evening?"

"Quite right."

"I thought as much. 16 Westerham Road, Finsbury Park? Was that it?"

"You're wrong there," said Tommy with a smile. "Dead wrong. The
Larches, Hampstead."

Dymchurch seemed honestly taken aback. Clearly he had not expected this.

"I don't understand it," he muttered. "It must be a new layout. The
Larches, Hampstead, you said?"

"Yes. I'm to meet him there at eleven o'clock to-night."

"Don't you do it, sir."

"There!" burst from Tuppence.

Tommy flushed.

"If you think, Inspector--" he began heatedly.

But the Inspector raised a soothing hand.

"I'll tell you what I think, Mr. Blunt. The place you want to be at
eleven o'clock to-night is here in this office."

"What?" cried Tuppence, astonished.

"Here in this office. Never mind how I know--departments overlap
sometimes--but you got one of those famous "Blue" letters to-day. Old
what's his name is after that. He lures you up to Hampstead, makes
quite sure of your being out of the way, and steps in here at night
when all the building is empty and quiet to have a good search round at
his leisure."

"But why should he think the letter would be here? He'd know I should
have it on me or else have passed it on."

"Begging your pardon, sir, that's just what he wouldn't know. He may
have tumbled to the fact that you're not the original Mr. Blunt, but
he probably thinks that you're a bona fide gentleman who's bought the
business. In that case, the letter would be all in the way of regular
business and would be filed as such."

"I see," said Tuppence.

"And that's just what we've got to let him think. We'll catch him red
handed here to-night."

"So that's the plan, is it?"

"Yes. It's the chance of a lifetime. Now, let me see, what's the time?
Six o'clock. What time do you usually leave here, sir?"

"About six."

"You must seem to leave the place as usual. Actually we'll sneak back
to it as soon as possible. I don't believe they'll come here till about
eleven, but of course they might. If you'll excuse me, I'll just go and
take a look round outside and see if I can make out anyone watching the
place."

Dymchurch departed, and Tommy began an argument with Tuppence.

It lasted some time and was heated and acrimonious. In the end Tuppence
suddenly capitulated.

"All right," she said. "I give in. I'll go home, and sit there
like a good little girl whilst you tackle crooks and hob nob with
detectives--but you wait, young man. I'll be even with you yet for
keeping me out of the fun."

Dymchurch returned at that moment.

"Coast seems clear enough," he said. "But you can't tell. Better seem
to leave in the usual manner. They won't go on watching the place once
you've gone."

Tommy called Albert, and gave him instructions to lock up.

Then the four of them made their way to the garage near by where the
car was usually left. Tuppence drove and Albert sat beside her. Tommy
and the detective sat behind.

Presently they were held up by a block in the traffic. Tuppence looked
over her shoulder and nodded. Tommy and the detective opened the right
hand door, and stepped out into the middle of Oxford Street. In a
minute or two Tuppence drove on.




                              CHAPTER VI

          THE ADVENTURE OF THE SINISTER STRANGER (continued)


"Better not go in just yet," said Dymchurch as he and Tommy hurried
into Haleham Street. "You've got the key all right?"

Tommy nodded.

"Then what about a bite of dinner? It's early, but there's a little
place here right opposite. We'll get a table by the window, so that we
can watch the place all the time."

They had a very welcome little meal, in the manner the detective had
suggested. Tommy found Inspector Dymchurch quite an entertaining
companion. Most of his official work had lain amongst international
spies, and he had tales to tell which astonished his simple listener.

They remained in the little Restaurant until eight o'clock when
Dymchurch suggested a move.

"It's quite dark now, sir," he explained. "We shall be able to slip in
without anyone being the wiser."

It was, as he said, quite dark. They crossed the road, looked quickly
up and down the deserted street, and slipped inside the entrance. Then
they mounted the stairs, and Tommy inserted his key in the lock of the
outer office.

Just as he did so, he heard, as he thought, Dymchurch whistle beside
him.

"What are you whistling for?" he asked sharply.

"_I_ didn't whistle," said Dymchurch, very much astonished, "I thought
_you_ did."

"Well, someone--" began Tommy.

He got no further. Strong arms seized him from behind, and before he
could cry out, a pad of something sweet and sickly was pressed over his
mouth and nose.

He struggled valiantly, but in vain. The chloroform did its work. His
head began to whirl and the floor heaved up and down in front of him.
Choking, he lost consciousness....

He came to himself painfully but in full possession of his faculties.
The chloroform had been only a whiff. They had kept him under long
enough to force a gag into his mouth and ensure that he did not cry out.

When he came to himself, he was half lying, half sitting, propped
against the wall in a corner of his own inner office. Two men were
busily turning out the contents of the desk, and ransacking the
cupboards, and as they worked they cursed freely.

"Swelp me, guvnor," said the taller of the two hoarsely, "we've turned
the whole bloody place upside down and inside out. It's not there."

"It must be here," snarled the other. "It isn't on him. And there's no
other place it can be."

As he spoke he turned, and to Tommy's utter amazement he saw that
the last speaker was none other than Inspector Dymchurch. The latter
grinned when he saw Tommy's astonished face.

"So our young friend is awake again," he said. "And a little
surprised--yes, a little surprised. But it was so simple. We suspect
that all is not as it should be with the International Detective
Agency. I volunteer to find out if that is so, or not. If the new Mr.
Blunt is indeed a spy, he will be suspicious, so I send first my dear
old friend Carl Bauer. Carl is told to act suspiciously and pitch an
improbable tale. He does so, and then I appear on the scene. I use the
name of Inspector Marriot to gain confidence. The rest is easy."

He laughed.

Tommy was dying to say several things, but the gag in his mouth
prevented him. Also, he was dying to _do_ several things--mostly with
his hands and feet--but alas, that too had been attended to. He was
securely bound.

The thing that amazed him most was the astounding change in the man
standing over him. As Inspector Dymchurch, the fellow had been a
typical Englishman. Now, no one could have mistaken him for a moment
for anything but a well educated foreigner who talked English perfectly
without trace of accent.

"Coggins, my good friend," said the erstwhile Inspector, addressing
his ruffianly looking associate. "Take your life preserver and stand
by the prisoner. I am going to remove the gag. You understand, my dear
Mr. Blunt, do you not, that it would be criminally foolish on your
part to cry out? But I am sure you do. For your age, you are quite an
intelligent lad."

Very deftly he removed the gag, and stepped back.

Tommy eased his stiff jaws, rolled his tongue round his mouth,
swallowed twice--and said nothing at all.

"I congratulate you on your restraint," said the other. "You appreciate
the position, I see. Have you nothing at all to say?"

"What I have to say will keep," said Tommy. "And it won't spoil by
waiting."

"Ah! What I have to say will not keep. In plain English, Mr. Blunt,
where is that letter?"

"My dear fellow, I don't know," said Tommy cheerfully. "I haven't got
it. But you know that as well as I do. I should go on looking about if
I were you. I like to see you and friend Coggins playing Hide and Seek
together."

The other's face darkened.

"You are pleased to be flippant, Mr. Blunt. You see that square box
over there. That is Coggins' little outfit. In it there is vitriol ...
yes, vitriol ... and irons that can be heated in the fire, so that they
are red hot and burn...."

Tommy shook his head sadly.

"An error in diagnosis," he murmured. "Tuppence and I labelled this
adventure wrong. It's not a Clubfoot story. It's a Bull Dog Drummond,
and you are the inimitable Carl Peterson."

"What is this nonsense you are talking?" snarled the other.

"Ah!" said Tommy. "I see you are unacquainted with the Classics. A
pity."

"Ignorant fool! Will you do what we want or will you not? Shall I tell
Coggins to get out his tools and begin?"

"Don't be so impatient," said Tommy. "Of course I'll do what you want,
as soon as you tell me what it is. You don't suppose I want to be
carved up like a filleted sole and fried on a gridiron? I loathe being
hurt."

Dymchurch looked at him in contempt.

"Gott! What cowards are these English."

"Common sense, my dear fellow, merely common sense. Leave the vitriol
alone, and let us come down to brass tacks."

"I want the letter."

"I've already told you I haven't got it."

"We know that--we also know who must have it. The girl."

"Very possibly you're right," said Tommy. "She may have slipped it into
her handbag when your pal Carl startled us."

"Oh, you do not deny. That is wise. Very good, you will write to
this Tuppence, as you call her, bidding her bring the letter here
immediately."

"I can't do that," began Tommy.

The other cut in before he had finished the sentence.

"Ah! You can't? Well, we shall soon see. Coggins!"

"Don't be in such a hurry," said Tommy. "And do wait for the end of the
sentence. I was going to say that I can't do that unless you untie my
arms. Hang it all, I'm not one of those freaks who can write with their
noses or their elbows."

"You are willing to write, then?"

"Of course. Haven't I been telling you so all along? I'm all out to be
pleasant and obliging. You won't do anything unkind to Tuppence, of
course. I'm sure you won't. She's such a nice girl."

"We only want the letter," said Dymchurch, but there was a singularly
unpleasant smile on his face.

At a nod from him, the brutal Coggins knelt down and unfastened
Tommy's arms. The latter swung them to and fro.

"That's better," he said cheerfully. "Will kind Coggins hand me my
fountain pen? It's on the table, I think, with my other miscellaneous
property."

Scowling, the man brought it to him, and provided a sheet of paper.

"Be careful what you say," Dymchurch said menacingly.

"We leave it to you, but failure means--death--and slow death at that."

"In that case," said Tommy, "I will certainly do my best."

He reflected a minute or two, then began to scribble rapidly.

"How will this do?" he asked, handing over the completed epistle.

    _Dear Tuppence_,

    _Can you come along at once and bring that blue letter with you? We
    want to decode it here and now._

    _In haste_

                                                              _Francis_

"Francis?" queried the bogus Inspector, with lifted eyebrows. "Was that
the name she called you?"

"As you weren't at my christening," said Tommy, "I don't suppose you
can know whether it's my name or not. But I think the cigarette case
you took from my pocket is a pretty good proof that I'm speaking the
truth."

The other stepped over to the table and took up the case, read "Francis
from Tuppence," with a faint grin and laid it down again.

"I am glad to find you are behaving so sensibly," he said. "Coggins,
give that note to Vassily. He is on guard outside. Tell him to take it
at once."

The next twenty minutes passed slowly, the ten minutes after that more
slowly still. Dymchurch was striding up and down with a face that grew
darker and darker. Once he turned menacingly on Tommy.

"If you have dared to double cross us ..." he growled.

"If we'd had a pack of cards here, we might have had a game of picquet
to pass the time," drawled Tommy. "Women always keep one waiting. I
hope you're not going to be unkind to little Tuppence when she comes?"

"Oh! no," said Dymchurch. "We shall arrange for you to go to the same
place--together."

"Will you, you swine," said Tommy under his breath.

Suddenly there was a stir in the outer office. A man whom Tommy had not
yet seen poked his head in and growled something in Russian.

"Good," said Dymchurch. "She is coming--and coming alone."

For a moment a faint anxiety caught at Tommy's heart.

The next minute he heard Tuppence's voice.

"Oh! there you are, Inspector Dymchurch. I've brought the letter. Where
is Francis?"

With the last words she came through the door, and Vassily sprang on
her from behind, clapping his hand over her mouth. Dymchurch tore the
handbag from her grasp, and turned over its contents in a frenzied
search.

Suddenly he uttered an ejaculation of delight and held up a blue
envelope with a Russian stamp on it. Coggins gave a hoarse shout.

And just in that minute of triumph, the other door, the door into
Tuppence's own office, opened noiselessly and Inspector Marriot and two
men armed with revolvers stepped into the room, with the sharp command:
"Hands Up!"

There was no fight. The others were taken at a hopeless disadvantage.
Dymchurch's automatic lay on the table, and the two others were not
armed.

"A very nice little haul," said Inspector Marriot with approval, as he
snapped on the last pair of handcuffs. "And we'll have more as time
goes on, I hope."

White with rage, Dymchurch glared at Tuppence.

"You little devil," he snarled, "It was you put them on to us."

"It wasn't all my doing. I ought to have guessed, I admit, when you
brought in the number sixteen this afternoon. But it was Tommy's note
clinched matters. I rang up Inspector Marriot, got Albert to meet him
with the duplicate key of the office, and came along myself with the
empty blue envelope in my bag. The letter I forwarded according to my
instructions as soon as I had parted from you two this afternoon."

But one word had caught the other's attention.

"_Tommy?_" he queried.

Tommy who had just been released from his bonds came towards them.

"Well done, brother Francis," he said to Tuppence, taking both her
hands in his. And to Dymchurch: "As I told you, my dear fellow, you
really ought to read the Classics."




                              CHAPTER VII

                          FINESSING THE KING


It was a wet Wednesday in the offices of the International Detective
Agency. Tuppence let the Daily Leader fall idly from her hand.

"Do you know what I've been thinking, Tommy?"

"It's impossible to say," replied her husband. "You think of so many
things, and you think of them all at once."

"I think it's time we went dancing again."

Tommy picked up the Daily Leader hastily.

"Our advertisement looks well," he remarked, his head on one side.
"Blunt's Brilliant Detectives. Do you realise, Tuppence, that you and
you alone are Blunt's Brilliant Detectives? There's glory for you, as
Humpty Dumpty would say."

"I was talking about dancing."

"There's a curious point that I have observed about newspapers. I
wonder if you have ever noticed it. Take these three copies of the
Daily Leader. Can you tell me how they differ one from the other?"

Tuppence took them with some curiosity.

"It seems fairly easy," she remarked witheringly. "One is to-day's, one
is yesterday's, and one is the day before's."

"Positively scintillating, my dear Watson. But that was not my meaning.
Observe the headline, 'The Daily Leader.' Compare the three--do you see
any difference between them?"

"No, I don't," said Tuppence, "and what's more, I don't believe there
is any."

Tommy sighed, and brought the tips of his fingers together in the most
approved Sherlock Holmes fashion.

"Exactly. Yet you read the papers as much--in fact, more than I do. But
I have observed and you have not. If you will look at to-day's Daily
Leader, you will see that in the middle of the downstroke of the D is
a small white dot, and there is another in the L of the same word. But
in yesterday's paper the white dot is not in DAILY at all. There are
two white dots in the L of LEADER. That of the day before again has two
dots in the D of DAILY. In fact, the dot, or dots, are in a different
position every day."

"Why?" asked Tuppence.

"That's a journalistic secret."

"Meaning you don't know, and can't guess."

"I will merely say this--the practice is common to all newspapers."

"Aren't you clever?" said Tuppence. "Especially at drawing red herrings
across the track. Let's go back to what we were talking about before."

"What were we talking about?"

"The Three Arts Ball."

Tommy groaned.

"No, no, Tuppence. Not the Three Arts Ball. I'm not young enough. I
assure you I'm not young enough."

"When I was a nice young girl," said Tuppence, "I was brought up to
believe that men--especially husbands--were dissipated beings, fond
of drinking and dancing and staying up late at night. It took an
exceptionally beautiful and clever wife to keep them at home. Another
illusion gone! All the wives I know are hankering to go out and dance,
and weeping because their husbands will wear bedroom slippers and go to
bed at half past nine. And you do dance so nicely, Tommy dear."

"Gently with the butter, Tuppence."

"As a matter of fact," said Tuppence, "it's not purely for pleasure
that I want to go. I'm intrigued by this advertisement."

She picked up the Daily Leader again, and read it out.

"I should go three hearts. 12 tricks. Ace of Spades. Necessary to
finesse the King."

"Rather an expensive way of learning Bridge," was Tommy's comment.

"Don't be an ass. That's nothing to do with Bridge. You see, I was
lunching with a girl yesterday at the Ace of Spades. It's a queer
little underground den in Chelsea, and she told me that it's quite the
fashion at these big shows to trundle round there in the course of the
evening for bacon and eggs and Welsh Rabbits--Bohemian sort of stuff.
It's got screened off booths all round it. Pretty hot place, I should
say."

"And your idea is--?"

"Three hearts stands for the Three Arts Ball to-morrow night, 12 tricks
is twelve o'clock, and the Ace of Spades is the Ace of Spades."

"And what about its being necessary to finesse the King?"

"Well, that's what I thought we'd find out."

"I shouldn't wonder if you weren't right, Tuppence," said Tommy
magnanimously. "But I don't quite see why you want to butt in upon
other people's love affairs."

"I shan't butt in. What I'm proposing is an interesting experiment in
detective work. We _need_ practice."

"Business is certainly not too brisk," agreed Tommy. "All the same,
Tuppence, what you want is to go to the Three Arts Ball and dance! Talk
of red herrings."

Tuppence laughed shamelessly.

"Be a sport, Tommy. Try and forget you're thirty-two and have got one
grey hair in your left eyebrow."

"I was always weak where women were concerned," murmured her husband.
"Have I got to make an ass of myself in fancy dress?"

"Of course, but you can leave that to me. I've got a splendid idea."

Tommy looked at her with some misgiving. He was always profoundly
mistrustful of Tuppence's brilliant ideas.

When he returned to the flat on the following evening, Tuppence came
flying out of her bedroom to meet him.

"It's come," she announced.

"What's come?"

"The costume. Come and look at it."

Tommy followed her. Spread out on the bed was a complete fireman's kit
with shining helmet.

"Good God!" groaned Tommy. "Have I joined the Wembley fire brigade?"

"Guess again," said Tuppence. "You haven't caught the idea yet. Use
your little grey cells, mon ami. Scintillate, Watson. Be a bull that
has been more than ten minutes in the arena."

"Wait a minute," said Tommy. "I begin to see. There is a dark purpose
in this. What are you going to wear, Tuppence?"

"An old suit of your clothes, an American hat and some horn spectacles."

"Crude," said Tommy. "But I catch the idea. McCarty incog. And I am
Riordan."

"That's it. I thought we ought to practise American detective methods
as well as English ones. Just for once I am going to be the star, and
you will be the humble assistant."

"Don't forget," said Tommy warningly, "that it's always an innocent
remark by the simple Denny that puts McCarty on the right track."

But Tuppence only laughed. She was in high spirits.

It was a most successful evening. The crowds, the music, the fantastic
dresses--everything conspired to make the young couple enjoy
themselves. Tommy forgot his rôle of the bored husband dragged out
against his will.

At ten minutes to twelve, they drove off in the car to the famous--or
infamous--Ace of Spades. As Tuppence had said, it was an underground
den, mean and tawdry in appearance, but it was nevertheless crowded
with couples in fancy dress. There were closed in booths round the
walls, and Tommy and Tuppence secured one of these. They left the
doors purposely a little ajar so that they could see what was going on
outside.

"I wonder which they are--our people, I mean," said Tuppence. "What
about that Columbine over there with the red Mephistopheles?"

"I fancy the wicked Mandarin and the lady who calls herself a
Battleship--more of a fast Cruiser, I should say."

"Isn't he witty?" said Tuppence. "All done on a little drop of drink!
Who's this coming in dressed as the Queen of Hearts--rather a good get
up, that."

The girl in question passed into the booth next to them accompanied
by her escort who was "the gentleman dressed in newspaper" from Alice
in Wonderland. They were both wearing masks--it seemed to be rather a
common custom at the Ace of Spades.

"I'm sure we're in a real den of iniquity," said Tuppence with a
pleased face. "Scandals all round us. What a row everyone makes."

A cry, as of protest, rang out from the booth next door and was covered
by a man's loud laugh. Everybody was laughing and singing. The shrill
voices of the girls rose above the booming of their male escorts.

"What about that shepherdess?" demanded Tommy. "The one with the comic
Frenchman. They might be our little lot."

"Anyone might be," confessed Tuppence. "I'm not going to bother. The
great thing is that we are enjoying ourselves."

"I could have enjoyed myself better in another costume," grumbled
Tommy. "You've no idea of the heat of this one."

"Cheer up," said Tuppence. "You look lovely."

"I'm glad of that," said Tommy. "It's more than you do. You're the
funniest little guy I've ever seen."

"Will you keep a civil tongue in your head, Denny, my boy. Hullo, the
gentleman in newspaper is leaving his lady alone. Where's he going, do
you think?"

"Going to hurry up the drinks, I expect," said Tommy. "I wouldn't mind
doing the same thing."

"He's a long time doing it," said Tuppence, when four or five minutes
had passed. "Tommy, would you think me an awful ass--" She paused.

Suddenly she jumped up.

"Call me an ass if you like. I'm going in next door."

"Look here, Tuppence--you can't--"

"I've a feeling there's something wrong. I _know_ there is. Don't try
and stop me."

She passed quickly out of their own booth, and Tommy followed her. The
doors of the one next door were closed. Tuppence pushed them apart and
went in, Tommy on her heels.

The girl dressed as the Queen of Hearts sat in the corner leaning up
against the wall in a queer huddled position. Her eyes regarded them
steadily through her mask, but she did not move. Her dress was carried
out in a bold design of red and white, but on the left side of the
pattern seemed to have got mixed. There was more red than should have
been....

With a cry Tuppence hurried forward. At the same time, Tommy saw what
she had seen, the hilt of a jewelled dagger just below the heart.
Tuppence dropped on her knees by the girl's side.

"Quick, Tommy, she's still alive. Get hold of the Manager and make him
get a doctor at once."

"Right. Mind you don't touch the handle of that dagger, Tuppence."

"I'll be careful. Go quickly."

Tommy hurried out, pulling the doors to behind him. Tuppence passed
her arm around the girl. The latter made a faint gesture, and Tuppence
realised that she wanted to get rid of the mask. Tuppence unfastened
it gently. She saw a fresh flower-like face, and wide starry eyes that
were full of horror, suffering, and a kind of dazed bewilderment.

"My dear," said Tuppence, very gently. "Can you speak at all? Will you
tell me, if you can, who did this?"

She felt the eyes fix themselves on her face. The girl was sighing,
the deep palpitating sighs of a failing heart. And still she looked
steadily at Tuppence. Then her lips parted.

"Bingo did it--" she said in a strained whisper.

Then her hands relaxed, and she seemed to nestle down on Tuppence's
shoulder.

Tommy came in, two men with him. The bigger of the two came forward
with an air of authority, the word, doctor, written all over him.

Tuppence relinquished her burden.

"She's dead, I'm afraid," she said with a catch in her voice.

The doctor made a swift examination.

"Yes," he said. "Nothing to be done. We had better leave things as they
are till the police come. How did the thing happen?"

Tuppence explained rather haltingly, slurring over her reasons for
entering the booth.

"It's a curious business," said the doctor. "You heard nothing?"

"I heard her give a kind of cry, but then the man laughed. Naturally I
didn't think--"

"Naturally not," agreed the doctor. "And the man wore a mask, you say.
You wouldn't recognise him?"

"I'm afraid not. Would you, Tommy?"

"No. Still there is his costume."

"The first thing will be to identify this poor lady," said the doctor.
"After that, well, I suppose the police will get down to things pretty
quickly. It ought not to be a difficult case. Ah, here they come."




                             CHAPTER VIII

                  THE GENTLEMAN DRESSED IN NEWSPAPER


It was after three o'clock when, weary and sick at heart, the husband
and wife reached home. Several hours passed before Tuppence could
sleep. She lay tossing from side to side, seeing always that flower
like face with the horror stricken eyes.

The dawn was coming in through the shutters when Tuppence finally
dropped off to sleep. After the excitement, she slept heavily and
dreamlessly. It was broad daylight when she awoke to find Tommy, up and
dressed, standing by the bedside, shaking her gently by the arm.

"Wake up, old thing. Inspector Marriot and another man are here and
want to see you."

"What time is it?"

"Just on eleven. I'll get Alice to bring you your tea right away."

"Yes, do. Tell Inspector Marriot I'll be there in ten minutes."

A quarter of an hour later, Tuppence came hurrying into the sitting
room. Inspector Marriot who was sitting looking very straight and
solemn, rose to greet her.

"Good morning, Mrs. Beresford. This is Sir Arthur Merivale."

Tuppence shook hands with a tall thin man with haggard eyes and greying
hair.

"It's about this sad business last night," said Inspector Marriot. "I
want Sir Arthur to hear from your own lips what you told me--the words
the poor lady said before she died. Sir Arthur has been very hard to
convince."

"I can't believe," said the other, "and I won't believe, that Bingo
Hale ever hurt a hair on Vere's head."

Inspector Marriot went on.

"We've made some progress since last night, Mrs. Beresford," he said.
"First of all we managed to identify the lady as Lady Merivale. We
communicated with Sir Arthur here. He recognised the body at once, and
was horrified beyond words, of course. Then I asked him if he knew
anyone called Bingo."

"You must understand, Mrs. Beresford," said Sir Arthur, "that Captain
Hale, who is known to all his friends as Bingo, is the dearest pal I
have. He practically lives with us. He was staying at my house when
they arrested him this morning. I cannot but believe that you have made
a mistake--it was not his name that my wife uttered."

"There is no possibility of mistake," said Tuppence gently. "She said
'Bingo did it--'"

"You see, Sir Arthur," said Marriot.

The unhappy man sank into a chair and covered his face with his hands.

"It's incredible. What earthly motive could there be? Oh! I know your
idea, Inspector Marriot. You think Hale was my wife's lover, but even
if that were so--which I don't admit for a moment--what motive was
there for killing her?"

Inspector Marriot coughed.

"It's not a very pleasant thing to say, sir. But Captain Hale has been
paying a lot of attention to a certain young American lady of late--a
young lady with a considerable amount of money. If Lady Merivale liked
to turn nasty, she could probably stop his marriage."

"This is outrageous, Inspector."

Sir Arthur sprang angrily to his feet. The other calmed him with a
soothing gesture.

"I beg your pardon, I'm sure, Sir Arthur. You say that you and Captain
Hale both decided to attend this show. Your wife was away on a visit at
the time, and you had no idea that she was to be there?"

"Not the least idea."

"Just show him that advertisement you told me about, Mrs. Beresford."

Tuppence complied.

"That seems to me clear enough. It was inserted by Captain Hale to
catch your wife's eye. They had already arranged to meet there. But
you only made up your mind to go the day before, hence it was necessary
to warn her. That is the explanation of the phrase "Necessary to
finesse the King." You ordered your costume from a theatrical firm
at the last minute, but Captain Hale's was a home made affair. He
went as the Gentleman Dressed in Newspaper. Do you know, Sir Arthur,
what we found clasped in the dead lady's hand? A fragment torn from a
newspaper. My men have orders to take Captain Hale's costume away with
them from your house. I shall find it at the Yard when I get back. If
there's a tear in it corresponding to the missing piece--well, it'll be
the end of the case."

"You won't find it," said Sir Arthur. "I know Bingo Hale."

Apologising to Tuppence for disturbing her, they took their leave.

Late that evening, there was a ring at the bell, and somewhat to the
astonishment of the young pair, Inspector Marriot once more walked in.

"I thought Blunt's Brilliant Detectives would like to hear the latest
developments," he said, with a hint of a smile.

"They would," said Tommy. "Have a drink?"

He placed materials hospitably at Inspector Marriot's elbow.

"It's a clear case," said the latter, after a minute or two. "Dagger
was the lady's own--the idea was to have made it look like suicide,
evidently, but thanks to you two being on the spot, that didn't come
off. We've found plenty of letters--they'd been carrying on together
for some time, that's clear--without Sir Arthur tumbling to it. Then we
found the last link--"

"The last what?" said Tuppence sharply.

"The last link in the chain--that fragment of the Daily Leader. It was
torn from the dress he wore--fits exactly. Oh! yes, it's a perfectly
clear case. By the way, I brought round a photograph of those two
exhibits--I thought they might interest you. It's very seldom that you
get such a perfectly clear case."

"Tommy," said Tuppence, when her husband returned from showing the
Scotland Yard man out. "Why do you think Inspector Marriot keeps
repeating that it's a perfectly clear case?"

"I don't know. Smug satisfaction, I suppose."

"Not a bit of it. He's trying to get us irritated. You know, Tommy,
butchers, for instance, know something about meat, don't they?"

"I should say so, but what on earth--"

"And in the same way, greengrocers know all about vegetables, and
fishermen about fish. Detectives, professional detectives, must know
all about criminals. They know the real thing when they see it--and
they know when it isn't the real thing. Marriot's expert knowledge
tells him that Captain Hale isn't a criminal--but all the facts are
dead against him. As a last resource Marriot is egging us on, hoping
against hope that some little detail or other will come back to
us--something that happened last night--which will throw a different
light on things. Tommy, why shouldn't it be suicide, after all?"

"Remember what she said to you."

"I know--but take that a different way. It was Bingo's doing--his
conduct that drove her to kill herself. It's just possible."

"Just. But it doesn't explain that fragment of newspaper."

"Let's have a look at Marriot's photographs. I forgot to ask him what
Hale's account of the matter was."

"I asked him that in the hall just now. Hale declared he had never
spoken to Lady Merivale at the show. Says somebody shoved a note into
his hand which said: 'Don't try and speak to me to-night. Arthur
suspects.' He couldn't produce the piece of paper, though, and it
doesn't sound a very likely story. Anyway, you and I _know_ he was with
her at the Ace of Spades because we saw him."

Tuppence nodded and pored over the two photographs. One was a tiny
fragment with the legend DAILY LE--and the rest torn off. The other
was the front sheet of the Daily Leader with the small round tear at
the top of it. There was no doubt about it. The two fitted together
perfectly.

"What are all those marks down the side?" asked Tommy.

"Stitches," said Tuppence. "Where it was sewn to the others, you know."

"I thought it might be a new scheme of dots," said Tommy. Then he gave
a slight shiver. "My word, Tuppence, how creepy it makes one feel.
To think that you and I were discussing dots and puzzling over that
advertisement--all as light-hearted as anything."

Tuppence did not answer. Tommy looked at her, and was startled to
observe that she was staring ahead of her, her mouth slightly open, and
a bewildered expression on her face.

"Tuppence," said Tommy gently, shaking her by the arm. "What's the
matter with you? Are you just going to have a stroke or something?"

But Tuppence remained motionless. Presently she said in a far away
voice.

"Denis Riordan."

"Eh?" said Tommy staring.

"It's just as you said. One simple innocent remark! Find me all this
week's Daily Leaders."

"What are you up to?"

"I'm being McCarty. I've been worrying round, and thanks to you, I've
got a notion at last. This is the front sheet of Tuesday's paper. I
seem to remember that Tuesday's paper was the one with two dots in the
L of LEADER. This has a dot in the D of DAILY--and one in the L too.
Get me the papers and let's make sure."

They compared them anxiously. Tuppence had been quite right in her
remembrance.

"You see? This fragment wasn't torn from Tuesday's paper."

"But Tuppence, we can't be sure. It may merely be different editions."

"It may--but at any rate it's given me an idea. It can't be
coincidence--that's certain. There's only one thing it can be if I'm
right in my idea. Ring up Sir Arthur, Tommy. Ask him to come round here
at once. Say I've got important news for him. Then get hold of Marriot.
Scotland Yard will know his address if he's gone home."

Sir Arthur Merivale, very much intrigued by the summons, arrived at the
flat in about half an hour's time. Tuppence came forward to greet him.

"I must apologise for sending for you in such a peremptory fashion,"
she said. "But my husband and I have discovered something that we think
you ought to know at once. Do sit down."

Sir Arthur sat down, and Tuppence went on.

"You are, I know, very anxious to clear your friend."

Sir Arthur shook his head sadly.

"I was, but even I have had to give in to the overwhelming evidence."

"What would you say if I told you that chance has placed in my hands a
piece of evidence that will certainly clear him of all complicity?"

"I should be overjoyed to hear it, Mrs. Beresford."

"Supposing," continued Tuppence, "that I had come across a girl who was
actually dancing with Captain Hale last night at twelve o'clock--the
hour when he was supposed to be at the Ace of Spades."

"Marvellous," cried Sir Arthur. "I knew there was some mistake. Poor
Vere must have killed herself after all."

"Hardly that," said Tuppence. "You forget the other man."

"What other man?"

"The one my husband and I saw leave the booth. You see, Sir Arthur,
there must have been a second man dressed in newspaper at the Ball. By
the way, what was your own costume?"

"Mine? I went as a seventeenth century executioner."

"How very appropriate," said Tuppence softly.

"Appropriate, Mrs. Beresford? What do you mean by appropriate?"

"For the part you played. Shall I tell you my ideas on the subject,
Sir Arthur? The newspaper dress is easily put on over that of an
executioner. Previously a little note has been slipped into Captain
Hale's hand, asking him not to speak to a certain lady. But the lady
herself knows nothing of that note. She goes to the Ace of Spades at
the appointed time, and sees the figure she expects to see. They go
into the booth. He takes her in his arms, I think, and kisses her--the
kiss of a Judas, and as he kisses he strikes with the dagger. She only
utters one faint cry and he covers that with a laugh. Presently he goes
away--and to the last, horrified and bewildered, she believes her lover
is the man who killed her.

"But she has torn a small fragment from the costume. The murderer
notices that--he is a man who pays great attention to detail. To make
the case absolutely clear against his victim the fragment must seem to
have been torn from Captain Hale's costume. That would present great
difficulties unless the two men happened to be living in the same
house. Then, of course, the thing would be simplicity itself. He makes
an exact duplicate of the tear in Captain Hale's costume--then he burns
his own and prepares to play the part of the loyal friend."

Tuppence paused.

"Well, Sir Arthur?"

Sir Arthur rose and made her a bow.

"The rather vivid imagination of a charming lady who reads too much
fiction."

"You think so?" said Tommy.

"And a husband who is guided by his wife," said Sir Arthur. "I do not
fancy you will find anybody to take the matter seriously."

He laughed out loud, and Tuppence stiffened in her chair.

"I would swear to that laugh anywhere," she said. "I heard it last in
the Ace of Spades. And you are under a little misapprehension about us
both. Beresford is our real name, but we have another."

She picked up a card from the table and handed it to him. Sir Arthur
read it aloud.

"International Detective Agency...." He drew his breath sharply. "So
that is what you really are! That was why Marriot brought me here this
morning. It was a trap--"

He strolled to the window.

"A fine view you have from here," he said. "Right over London."

"Inspector Marriot," cried Tommy sharply.

In a flash the Inspector appeared from the communicating door in the
opposite wall.

A little smile of amusement came to Sir Arthur's lips.

"I thought as much," he said. "But you won't get me this time, I'm
afraid, Inspector. I prefer to take my own way out."

And, putting his hands on the sill, he vaulted clean through the window.

Tuppence shrieked and clapped her hands to her ears to shut out the
sound she had already imagined--the sickening thud far beneath.
Inspector Marriot uttered an oath.

"We should have thought of the window," he said. "Though, mind you, it
would have been a difficult thing to prove. I'll go down and--and--see
to things."

"Poor devil," said Tommy slowly. "If he was fond of his wife--"

But the Inspector interrupted him with a snort.

"Fond of her? That's as may be. He was at his wits' end where to turn
for money. Lady Merivale had a large fortune of her own, and it all
went to him. If she'd bolted with young Hale, he'd never have seen a
penny of it."

"That was it, was it?"

"Of course, from the very start, I sensed that Sir Arthur was a bad
lot, and that Captain Hale was all right. We know pretty well what's
what at the Yard--but it's awkward when you're up against facts. I'll
be going down now--I should give your wife a glass of brandy if I were
you, Mr. Beresford--it's been upsetting like for her."

"Greengrocers," said Tuppence in a low voice as the door closed behind
the imperturbable Inspector. "Butchers. Fishermen. Detectives. I was
right, wasn't I? He knew."

Tommy, who had been busy at the sideboard, approached her with a large
glass.

"Drink this."

"What is it? Brandy?"

"No, it's a large cocktail--suitable for a triumphant McCarty. Yes,
Marriot's right all round--that was the way of it. A bold finesse for
game and rubber."

Tuppence nodded.

"But he finessed the wrong way round."

"And so," said Tommy. "Exit the King."




                              CHAPTER IX

                     THE CASE OF THE MISSING LADY


The buzzer on Mr. Blunt's desk--(International Detective Agency,
Manager, Theodore Blunt)--uttered its warning call. Tommy and Tuppence
both flew to their respective peepholes which commanded a view of the
outer office. There it was Albert's business to delay the prospective
clients with various artistic devices.

"I will see, sir," he was saying. "But I'm afraid Mr. Blunt is very
busy just at present. He is engaged with Scotland Yard on the phone
just now."

"I'll wait," said the visitor. "I haven't got a card with me, but my
name is Gabriel Stavansson."

The client was a magnificent specimen of manhood, standing over
six feet high. His face was bronzed and weather beaten, and the
extraordinary blue of his eyes made an almost startling contrast to the
brown skin.

Tommy swiftly made up his mind. He put on his hat, picked up some
gloves, and opened the door. He paused on the threshold.

"This gentleman is waiting to see you, Mr. Blunt," said Albert.

A quick frown passed over Tommy's face. He took out his watch.

"I am due at the Duke's at a quarter to eleven," he said. Then he
looked keenly at the visitor. "I can give you a few minutes if you will
come this way."

The latter followed him obediently into the inner office where Tuppence
was sitting demurely with pad and pencil.

"My confidential secretary, Miss Robinson," said Tommy. "Now, sir,
perhaps you will state your business? Beyond the fact that it is
urgent, that you came here in a taxi, and that you have lately been in
the Arctic--or possibly the Antarctic, I know nothing."

The visitor stared at him in amazement.

"But this is marvellous," he cried. "I thought detectives only did such
things in books! Your office boy did not even give you my name!"

Tommy sighed deprecatingly.

"Tut tut, all that was very easy," he said. "The rays of the midnight
sun within the Arctic circle have a peculiar action upon the skin--the
actinic rays have certain properties. I am writing a little monograph
on the subject shortly. But all this is wide of the point. What is it
that has brought you to me in such distress of mind?"

"To begin with, Mr. Blunt, my name is Gabriel Stavansson--"

"Ah! of course," said Tommy. "The well known explorer. You have
recently returned from the region of the North Pole, I believe?"

"I landed in England three days ago. A friend who was cruising in
Northern waters brought me back on his yacht. Otherwise I should not
have got back for another fortnight. Now I must tell you, Mr. Blunt,
that before I started on this last expedition two years ago, I had the
great good fortune to become engaged to Mrs. Maurice Leigh Gordon--"

Tommy interrupted.

"Mrs. Leigh Gordon was, before her marriage--"

"The Honorable Hermione Crane, second daughter of Lord Lanchester,"
reeled off Tuppence glibly.

Tommy threw her a glance of admiration.

"Her first husband was killed in the War," added Tuppence.

Gabriel Stavansson nodded.

"That is quite correct. As I was saying, Hermione and I became engaged.
I offered, of course, to give up this expedition, but she wouldn't
hear of such a thing--bless her! She's the right kind of woman for an
explorer's wife. Well, my first thought on landing was to see Hermione.
I sent a telegram from Southampton, and rushed up to town by the first
train. I knew that she was living for the time being with an aunt of
hers, Lady Susan Clonray, in Pont Street, and I went straight there.
To my great disappointment, I found that Hermy was away visiting some
friends in Northumberland. Lady Susan was quite nice about it, after
getting over her first surprise at seeing me. As I told you, I wasn't
expected for another fortnight. She said Hermy would be returning in a
few days' time. Then I asked for her address, but the old woman hummed
and hawed--said Hermy was staying at one of two different places, and
that she wasn't quite sure what order she was taking them in. I may
as well tell you, Mr. Blunt, that Lady Susan and I have never got on
very well. She's one of those fat women with double chins. I loathe fat
women--always have--fat women and fat dogs are an abomination unto the
Lord--and unfortunately they so often go together! It's an idiosyncracy
of mine, I know--but there it is--I never can get on with a fat woman."

"Fashion agrees with you, Mr. Stavansson," said Tommy drily. "And
everyone has their own pet aversion--that of the late Lord Roberts was
cats."

"Mind you, I'm not saying that Lady Susan isn't a perfectly charming
woman--she may be, but I've never taken to her. I've always felt, deep
down, that she disapproved of our engagement, and I feel sure that she
would influence Hermy against me if that were possible. I'm telling you
this for what it's worth. Count it out as prejudice, if you like. Well,
to go on with my story, I'm the kind of obstinate brute who likes his
own way. I didn't leave Pont Street until I'd got out of her the names
and addresses of the people Hermy was likely to be staying with. Then I
took the mail train North."

"You are, I perceive, a man of action, Mr. Stavansson," said Tommy,
smiling.

"The thing came upon me like a bombshell. Mr. Blunt, none of these
people had seen a sign of Hermy. Of the three houses, only one had
been expecting her--Lady Susan must have made a bloomer over the
other two--and she had put off her visit there at the last moment by
telegram. I returned post haste to London, of course, and went straight
to Lady Susan. I will do her the justice to say that she seemed upset.
She admitted that she had no idea where Hermy could be. All the same,
she strongly negatived any idea of going to the police. She pointed
out that Hermy was not a silly young girl, but an independent woman who
had always been in the habit of making her own plans. She was probably
carrying out some idea of her own.

"I thought it quite likely that Hermy didn't want to report all her
movements to Lady Susan. But I was still worried. I had that queer
feeling one gets when something is wrong. I was just leaving when a
telegram was brought to Lady Susan. She read it with an expression of
relief and handed it to me. It ran as follows: '_Changed my plans Just
off to Monte Carlo for a week Hermy._'"

Tommy held out his hand.

"You have got the telegram with you?"

"No, I haven't. But it was handed in at Maldon, Surrey. I noticed that
at the time, because it struck me as odd. What should Hermy be doing at
Maldon? She'd no friends there that I had ever heard of."

"You didn't think of rushing off to Monte Carlo in the same way that
you had rushed North?"

"I thought of it, of course. But I decided against it. You see, Mr.
Blunt, whilst Lady Susan seemed quite satisfied by that telegram, I
wasn't. It struck me as odd that she should always telegraph, not
write. A line or two in her own handwriting would have set all my fears
at rest. But anyone can sign a telegram 'Hermy.' The more I thought it
over, the more uneasy I got. In the end I went down to Maldon. That was
yesterday afternoon. It's a fair sized place--good links there and all
that--two hotels. I inquired everywhere I could think of, but there
wasn't a sign that Hermy had ever been there. Coming back in the train
I read your advertisement, and I thought I'd put it up to you. If Hermy
has really gone off to Monte Carlo, I don't want to set the police
on her track and make a scandal, but I'm not going to be sent off on
a wild goose chase myself. I stay here in London, in case--in case
there's been foul play of any kind."

Tommy nodded thoughtfully.

"What do you suspect exactly?"

"I don't know. But I feel there's something wrong."

With a quick movement, Stavansson took a case from his pocket and laid
it open before them.

"That is Hermione," he said. "I will leave it with you."

The photograph represented a tall willowy woman, no longer in her first
youth, but with a charming frank smile and lovely eyes.

"Now, Mr. Stavansson," said Tommy. "There is nothing you have omitted
to tell me?"

"Nothing whatever."

"No detail, however small?"

"I don't think so."

Tommy sighed.

"That makes the task harder," he observed. "You must often have
noticed, Mr. Stavansson, in reading of crime, how one small detail is
all the great detective needs to set him on the track. I may say that
this case presents some unusual features. I have, I think, practically
solved it already, but time will show."

He picked up a violin which lay on the table, and drew the bow once
or twice across the strings. Tuppence ground her teeth and even the
explorer blenched. The performer laid the instrument down again.

"A few chords from Mosgovskensky," he murmured. "Leave me your address,
Mr. Stavansson, and I will report progress to you."

As the visitor left the office, Tuppence grabbed the violin and putting
it in the cupboard turned the key in the lock.

"If you must be Sherlock Holmes," she observed, "I'll get you a nice
little syringe and a bottle labelled Cocaine, but for God's sake leave
that violin alone. If that nice explorer man hadn't been as simple as a
child, he'd have seen through you. Are you going on with the Sherlock
Holmes touch?"

"I flatter myself that I have carried it through very well so far,"
said Tommy with some complacence. "The deductions were good, weren't
they? I had to risk the taxi. After all, it's the only sensible way of
getting to this place."

"It's lucky I had just read the bit about his engagement in this
morning's Daily Mirror," remarked Tuppence.

"Yes, that looked well for the efficiency of Blunt's Brilliant
Detectives. This is decidedly a Sherlock Holmes case. Even you cannot
have failed to notice the similarity between it and the disappearance
of Lady Frances Carfax."

"Do you expect to find Mrs. Leigh Gordon's body in a coffin?"

"Logically, history should repeat itself. Actually--well, what do you
think?"

"Well," said Tuppence. "The most obvious explanation seems to be that
for some reason or other Hermy, as he calls her, is afraid to meet
her fiancé, and that Lady Susan is backing her up. In fact, to put it
bluntly, she's come a cropper of some kind, and has got the wind up
about it."

"That occurred to me also," said Tommy. "But I thought we'd better
make pretty certain before suggesting that explanation to a man like
Stavansson. What about a run down to Maldon, old thing? And it would do
no harm to take some golf clubs with us."

Tuppence agreeing, the International Detective Agency was left in the
charge of Albert.

Maldon, though a well known residential place, did not cover a large
area. Tommy and Tuppence, making every possible inquiry that ingenuity
could suggest, nevertheless drew a complete blank. It was as they were
returning to London that a brilliant idea occurred to Tuppence.

"Tommy, why did they put Maldon Surrey on the telegram?"

"Because Maldon is in Surrey, idiot."

"Idiot yourself--I don't mean that. If you get a telegram
from--Hastings, say, or Torquay, they don't put the county after it.
But from Richmond, they do put Richmond Surrey. That's because there
are two Richmonds."

Tommy, who was driving, slowed up.

"Tuppence," he said affectionately. "Your idea is not so dusty. Let us
make inquiries at yonder post office."

They drew up before a small building in the middle of a village street.
A very few minutes sufficed to elicit the information that there were
two Maldons. Maldon, Surrey, and Maldon, Sussex, the latter a tiny
hamlet but possessed of a telegraph office.

"That's it," said Tuppence excitedly. "Stavansson knew Maldon was in
Surrey, so he hardly looked at the word beginning with S. after Maldon."

"To-morrow," said Tommy. "We'll have a look at Maldon, Sussex."

Maldon, Sussex, was a very different proposition to its Surrey
namesake. It was four miles from a railway station, possessed two
public houses, two small shops, a post and telegraph office combined
with a sweet and picture postcard business, and about seven small
cottages. Tuppence took on the shops whilst Tommy betook himself to the
Cock and Sparrow. They met half an hour later.

"Well?" said Tuppence.

"Quite good beer," said Tommy, "but no information."

"You'd better try the King's Head," said Tuppence. "I'm going back to
the post office. There's a sour old woman there, but I heard them yell
to her that dinner was ready."

She returned to the place, and began examining postcards. A fresh-faced
girl, still munching, came out of the back room.

"I'd like these, please," said Tuppence. "And do you mind waiting
whilst I just look over these comic ones?"

She sorted through a packet, talking as she did so.

"I'm ever so disappointed you couldn't tell me my sister's address.
She's staying near here and I've lost her letter. Leigh Wood, her name
is."

The girl shook her head.

"I don't remember it. And we don't get many letters through here
either--so I probably should if I'd seen it on a letter. Apart from the
Grange, there isn't many big houses round about."

"What is the Grange?" asked Tuppence. "Who does it belong to?"

"Doctor Horriston has it. It's turned into a Nursing Home now. Nerve
cases mostly, I believe. Ladies that come down for rest cures, and all
that sort of thing. Well, it's quiet enough down here, Heaven knows."
She giggled.

Tuppence hastily selected a few cards and paid for them.

"That's Doctor Horriston's car coming along now," exclaimed the girl.

Tuppence hurried to the shop door. A small two seater was passing. At
the wheel was a tall dark man with a neat black beard and a powerful,
unpleasant face. The car went straight on down the street. Tuppence saw
Tommy crossing the road towards her.

"Tommy, I believe I've got it. Doctor Horriston's Nursing Home."

"I heard about it at the King's Head, and I thought there might be
something in it. But if she's had a nervous breakdown or anything of
that sort, her aunt and her friends would know about it surely."

"Ye-es. I didn't mean that. Tommy, did you see that man in the two
seater?"

"Unpleasant looking brute, yes."

"That was Doctor Horriston."

Tommy whistled.

"Shifty looking beggar. What do you say about it, Tuppence? Shall we go
and have a look at the Grange?"

They found the place at last, a big rambling house, surrounded by
deserted grounds, with a swift mill stream running behind the house.

"Dismal sort of abode," said Tommy. "It gives me the creeps, Tuppence.
You know, I've a feeling this is going to turn out a far more serious
matter than we thought at first."

"Oh! don't. If only we are in time. That woman's in some awful danger,
I feel it in my bones."

"Don't let your imagination run away with you."

"I can't help it. I mistrust that man. What shall we do? I think it
would be a good plan if I went and rang the bell alone first, and asked
boldly for Mrs. Leigh Gordon just to see what answer I get. Because,
after all, it may be perfectly fair and above board."

Tuppence carried out her plan. The door was opened almost immediately
by a man servant with an impassive face.

"I want to see Mrs. Leigh Gordon if she is well enough to see me."

She fancied that there was a momentary flicker of the man's eyelashes,
but he answered readily enough.

"There is no one of that name here, Madam."

"Oh! surely. This is Doctor Horriston's place, The Grange, is it not?"

"Yes, Madam, but there is nobody of the name of Mrs. Leigh Gordon here."

Baffled, Tuppence was forced to withdraw and hold a further
consultation with Tommy outside the gate.

"Perhaps he was speaking the truth. After all, we don't _know_."

"He wasn't. He was lying. I'm sure of it."

"Wait until the doctor comes back," said Tommy. "Then I'll pass myself
off as a journalist anxious to discuss his new system of rest cure with
him. That will give me a chance of getting inside and studying the
geography of the place."

The doctor returned about half an hour later. Tommy gave him about
five minutes, then he in turn marched up to the front door. But he too
returned baffled.

"The doctor was engaged and couldn't be disturbed. And he never sees
journalists. Tuppence, you're right. There's something fishy about this
place. It's ideally situated--miles from anywhere. Any mortal thing
could go on here, and no one would ever know."

"Come on," said Tuppence, with determination.

"What are you going to do?"

"I'm going to climb over the wall and see if I can't get up to the
house quietly without being seen."

"Right. I'm with you."

The garden was somewhat overgrown, and afforded a multitude of cover.
Tommy and Tuppence managed to reach the back of the house unobserved.

Here there was a wide terrace, with some crumbling steps leading down
from it. In the middle some French windows opened onto the terrace, but
they dared not step out into the open, and the windows where they were
crouching were too high for them to be able to look in. It did not seem
as though their reconnaissance would be much use when suddenly Tuppence
tightened her grasp of Tommy's arm.

Someone was speaking in the room close to them. The window was open and
the fragment of conversation came clearly to their ears.

"Come in, come in, and shut the door," said a man's voice irritably. "A
lady came about an hour ago, you said, and asked for Mrs. Leigh Gordon?"

Tuppence recognised the answering voice as that of the impassive man
servant.

"Yes, sir."

"You said she wasn't here, of course?"

"Of course, sir."

"And now this journalist fellow," fumed the other.

He came suddenly to the window, throwing up the sash, and the two
outside, peering through a screen of bushes, recognised Dr. Horriston.

"It's the woman I mind most about," continued the doctor. "What did she
look like?"

"Young, good-looking, and very smartly dressed, sir."

Tommy nudged Tuppence in the ribs.

"Exactly," said the doctor between his teeth. "As I feared. Some friend
of the Leigh Gordon woman's. It's getting very difficult. I shall have
to take steps--"

He left the sentence unfinished. Tommy and Tuppence heard the door
close. There was silence.

Gingerly, Tommy led the retreat. When they had reached a little
clearing not far away, but out of earshot from the house, he spoke.

"Tuppence, old thing, this is getting serious. They mean mischief. I
think we ought to get back to town at once and see Stavansson."

To his surprise Tuppence shook her head.

"We must stay down here. Didn't you hear him say he was going to take
steps? That might mean anything."

"The worst of it is we've hardly got a case to go to the police on."

"Listen, Tommy. Why not ring up Stavansson from the village? I'll stay
around here."

"Perhaps that is the best plan," agreed her husband. "But, I
say--Tuppence--"

"Well?"

"Take care of yourself--won't you?"

"Of course I shall, you silly old thing. Cut along."

It was some two hours later that Tommy returned. He found Tuppence
awaiting him near the gate.

"Well?"

"I couldn't get on to Stavansson. Then I tried Lady Susan. She was out
too. Then I thought of ringing up old Brady. I asked him to look up
Horriston in the Medical Directory or whatever the thing calls itself."

"Well, what did Dr. Brady say?"

"Oh! he knew the name at once. Horriston was once a bona fide
doctor, but he came a cropper of some kind. Brady called him a most
unscrupulous quack, and said he, personally, wouldn't be surprised at
anything. The question is, what are we to do now?"

"We must stay here," said Tuppence instantly. "I've a feeling they mean
something to happen to-night. By the way, a gardener has been clipping
ivy round the house. Tommy, _I saw where he put the ladder_."

"Good for you, Tuppence," said her husband appreciatively. "Then
to-night--"

"As soon as it's dark--"

"We shall see--"

"What we shall see."

Tommy took his turn at watching the house whilst Tuppence went to the
village and had some food.

Then she returned and they took up the vigil together. At nine o'clock,
they decided that it was dark enough to commence operations. They
were now able to circle round the house in perfect freedom. Suddenly
Tuppence clutched Tommy by the arm.

"Listen."

The sound she had heard came again, borne faintly on the night air. It
was the moan of a woman in pain. Tuppence pointed upward to a window on
the first floor.

"It came from that room," she whispered.

Again that low moan rent the stillness of the night.

The two listeners decided to put their original plan into action.
Tuppence led the way to where she had seen the gardener put the ladder.
Between them they carried it to the side of the house from which they
had heard the moaning. All the blinds of the ground floor rooms were
drawn, but this particular window upstairs was unshuttered.

Tommy put the ladder as noiselessly as possible against the side of the
house.

"I'll go up," whispered Tuppence. "You stay below. I don't mind
climbing ladders and you can steady it better than I could. And in case
the doctor should come round the corner you'd be able to deal with him
and I shouldn't."

Nimbly Tuppence swarmed up the ladder, and raised her head cautiously
to look in at the window. Then she ducked it swiftly, but after a
minute or two brought it very slowly up again. She stayed there for
about five minutes. Then she descended again.

"It's her," she said breathlessly and ungrammatically. "But oh! Tommy,
it's horrible. She's lying there in bed, moaning, and turning to and
fro--and just as I got there a woman dressed as a nurse came in. She
bent over her and injected something in her arm and then went away
again. What shall we do?"

"Is she conscious?"

"I think so. I'm almost sure she is. I fancy she may be strapped to the
bed. I'm going up again, and if I can, I'm going to get into that room."

"I say, Tuppence--"

"If I'm in any sort of danger I'll yell for you. So long."

Avoiding further argument Tuppence hurried up the ladder again. Tommy
saw her try the window, then noiselessly push up the sash. Another
second, and she had disappeared inside.

And now an agonising time came for Tommy. He could hear nothing at
first. Tuppence and Mrs. Leigh Gordon must be talking in whispers if
they were talking at all. Presently he did hear a low murmur of voices
and drew a breath of relief. But suddenly the voices stopped. Dead
silence.

Tommy strained his ears. Nothing. What could they be doing?

Suddenly a hand fell on his shoulder.

"Come on," said Tuppence's voice out of the darkness.

"Tuppence! How did you get here?"

"Through the front door. Let's get out of this."

"Get out of this?"

"That's what I said."

"But--Mrs. Leigh Gordon?"

In a tone of indescribable bitterness Tuppence replied.

"Getting thin!"

Tommy looked at her, suspecting irony.

"What do you mean?"

"What I say. Getting thin. Slinkiness. Reduction of weight. Didn't
you hear Stavansson say he hated fat women? In the two years he's
been away, his Hermy has put on weight. Got a panic when she knew
he was coming back, and rushed off to do this new treatment of Dr.
Horriston's. It's injections of some sort, and he makes a deadly secret
of it, and charges through the nose. I daresay he _is_ a quack--but
he's a damned successful one! Stavansson comes home a fortnight
too soon, when she's only beginning the treatment. Lady Susan has
been sworn to secrecy, and plays up. And we come down here and make
blithering idiots of ourselves!"

Tommy drew a deep breath.

"I believe, Watson," he said with dignity, "that there is a very good
Concert at the Queen's Hall to-morrow. We shall be in plenty of time
for it. And you will oblige me by not placing this case upon your
records. It has absolutely _no_ distinctive features."




                               CHAPTER X

                            BLINDMAN'S BUFF


"Right," said Tommy, and replaced the receiver on its hook.

Then he turned to Tuppence.

"That was the Chief. Seems to have got the wind up about us. It appears
that the parties we're after have got wise to the fact that I'm not the
genuine Mr. Theodore Blunt. We're to expect excitements at any minute.
The Chief begs you as a favor to go home and stay at home, and not mix
yourself up in it any more. Apparently the hornet's nest we've stirred
up is bigger than anyone imagined."

"All that about my going home is nonsense," said Tuppence decidedly.
"Who is going to look after you if I go home? Besides, I like
excitement. Business hasn't been very brisk just lately."

"Well, one can't have murders and robberies every day," said Tommy. "Be
reasonable. Now my idea is this. When business is slack, we ought to do
a certain amount of home exercises every day."

"Lie on our backs and wave our feet in the air? That sort of thing?"

"Don't be so literal in your interpretation. When I say exercises,
I mean exercises in the detective art. Reproductions of the Great
Masters. For instance--"

From the drawer beside him, Tommy took out a formidable dark green
eyeshade covering both eyes. This he adjusted with some care. Then he
drew a watch from his pocket.

"I broke the glass this morning," he remarked. "That paved the way for
its being the crystalless watch which my sensitive fingers touch so
lightly."

"Be careful," said Tuppence. "You nearly had the short hand off then."

"Give me your hand," said Tommy. He held it, one finger feeling for the
pulse. "Ah! the keyboard of silence. This woman has _not_ got heart
disease."

"I suppose," said Tuppence, "that you are Thornley Colton?"

"Just so," said Tommy. "The blind Problemist. And you're thingummybob,
the black-haired apple-cheeked secretary--"

"The bundle of baby clothes picked up on the banks of the English
river," finished Tuppence.

"And Albert is the Fee, alias Shrimp."

"We must teach him to say 'Gee,'" said Tuppence. "And his voice isn't
shrill. It's dreadfully hoarse."

"Against the wall by the door," said Tommy, "you perceive the slim
hollow cane which held in my sensitive hand tells me so much."

He rose and cannoned into a chair.

"Damn!" said Tommy. "I forgot that chair was there."

"It must be beastly to be blind," said Tuppence with feeling.

"Rather," agreed Tommy heartily. "I'm sorrier for all those poor devils
who lost their eyesight in the War than for anyone else. But they say
that when you live in the dark you really do develop special senses.
That's what I want to try and see if one couldn't do. It would be jolly
handy to train oneself to be some good in the dark. Now, Tuppence, be a
good Sydney Thames. How many steps to that cane?"

Tuppence made a desperate guess.

"Three straight, five left," she hazarded.

Tommy paced it uncertainly, Tuppence interrupting with a cry of warning
as she realised that the fourth step left would take him slap against
the wall.

"There's a lot in this," said Tuppence. "You've no idea how difficult
it is to judge how many steps are needed."

"It's jolly interesting," said Tommy. "Call Albert in. I'm going to
shake hands with you both, and see if I know which is which."

"All right," said Tuppence, "but Albert must wash his hands first.
They're sure to be sticky from those beastly acid drops he's always
eating."

Albert, introduced to the game, was full of interest.

Tommy, the hand shakes completed, smiled complacently.

"The keyboard of silence cannot lie," he murmured. "The first was
Albert, the second, you, Tuppence."

"Wrong!" shrieked Tuppence. "Keyboard of silence indeed! You went by my
wedding ring. And I put that on Albert's finger."

Various other experiments were carried out, with indifferent success.

"But it's coming," declared Tommy. "One can't expect to be infallible
straight away. I tell you what. It's just lunch time. You and I will
go to the Blitz, Tuppence. Blind man and his keeper. Some jolly useful
tips to be picked up there."

"I say, Tommy, we shall get into trouble."

"No, we shan't. I shall behave quite like the little gentleman. But I
bet you that by the end of luncheon I shall be startling you."

All protests being thus overborne, a quarter of an hour later saw Tommy
and Tuppence comfortably ensconced at a corner table in the Gold Room
of the Blitz.

Tommy ran his fingers lightly over the Menu.

"Pilaff de Homard and Grilled Chicken for me," he murmured.

Tuppence also made her selection, and the waiter moved away.

"So far, so good," said Tommy. "Now for a more ambitious venture. What
beautiful legs that girl in the short skirt has--the one who has just
come in."

"How was that done, Thorn?"

"Beautiful legs impart a particular vibration to the floor which is
received by my hollow cane. Or, to be honest, in a big Restaurant there
is nearly always a girl with beautiful legs standing in the doorway
looking for her friends, and with short skirts going about, she'd be
sure to take advantage of them."

The meal proceeded.

"The man two tables from us is a very wealthy profiteer, I fancy," said
Tommy carelessly.

"Pretty good," said Tuppence appreciatively. "I don't follow that one."

"I shan't tell you how it's done every time. It spoils my show. The
head waiter is serving champagne three tables off to the right. A stout
woman in black is about to pass our table."

"Tommy, how can you--"

"Aha! You're beginning to see what I can do. That's a nice girl in
brown just getting up at the table behind you."

"Snoo!" said Tuppence. "It's a young man in grey."

"Oh!" said Tommy, momentarily disconcerted.

And at that moment two men who had been sitting at a table not far
away, and who had been watching the young pair with keen interest, got
up and came across to the corner table.

"Excuse me," said the elder of the two, a tall well dressed man with an
eyeglass and a small grey moustache. "But you have been pointed out to
me as Mr. Theodore Blunt. May I ask if that is so?"

Tommy hesitated a minute, feeling somewhat at a disadvantage. Then he
bowed his head.

"That is so. I am Mr. Blunt."

"What an unexpected piece of good fortune! Mr. Blunt, I was going to
call at your offices after lunch. I am in trouble--very grave trouble.
But--excuse me--you have had some accident to your eyes?"

"My dear sir," said Tommy in a melancholy voice. "I am
blind--completely blind."

"What?"

"You are astonished. But surely you have heard of blind detectives?"

"In fiction. Never in real life. And I have certainly never heard that
you were blind."

"Many people are not aware of the fact," murmured Tommy. "I am wearing
an eyeshade to-day to save my eyeballs from glare. But without it,
quite a host of people have never suspected my infirmity--if you call
it that. You see, my eyes cannot mislead me. But enough of all this.
Shall we go at once to my office, or will you give me the facts of the
case here? The latter would be best, I think."

A waiter brought up two extra chairs, and the two men sat down. The
second man, who had not yet spoken, was shorter, sturdy in build and
very dark.

"It is a matter of great delicacy," said the older man dropping his
voice confidentially. He looked uncertainly at Tuppence. Mr. Blunt
seemed to feel the glance.

"Let me introduce my confidential secretary," he said. "Miss Ganges.
Found on the banks of the Indian river--a mere bundle of baby
clothes. Very sad history. Miss Ganges is my eyes. She accompanies me
everywhere."

The stranger acknowledged the introduction with a bow.

"Then I can speak out. Mr. Blunt, my daughter, a girl of sixteen, has
been abducted under somewhat peculiar circumstances. I discovered this
half an hour ago. The circumstances of the case were such that I dared
not call in the police. Instead I rang up your office. They told me you
were out to lunch, but would be back by half past two. I came in here
with my friend Captain Harker--"

The short man jerked his head and muttered something.

"By the greatest good fortune you happened to be lunching here also. We
must lose no time. You must return with me to my house immediately."

Tommy demurred cautiously.

"I can be with you in half an hour. I must return to my office first."

Captain Harker, turning to glance at Tuppence, may have been surprised
to see a half smile lurking for a moment at the corners of her mouth.

"No, no, that will not do. You must return with me." The grey haired
man took a card from his pocket and handed it across the table. "That
is my name."

Tommy fingered it.

"My fingers are hardly sensitive enough for that," he said with a
smile, and handed it to Tuppence, who read out in a low voice: "The
Duke of Blairgowrie."

She looked with great interest at their client. The Duke of Blairgowrie
was well known to be a most haughty and inaccessible nobleman who had
married as a wife the daughter of a Chicago pork butcher, many years
younger than himself, and of a lively temperament that augured ill for
their future together. There had been rumors of disaccord lately.

"You will come at once, Mr. Blunt?" said the Duke, with a tinge of
acerbity in his manner.

Tommy yielded to the inevitable.

"Miss Ganges and I will come with you," he said quietly. "You will
excuse my just stopping to drink a large cup of black coffee? They will
serve it immediately. I am subject to very distressing headaches, the
result of my eye trouble, and the coffee steadies my nerves."

He called a waiter and gave the order. Then he spoke to Tuppence.

"Miss Ganges--I am lunching here to-morrow with the French Prefect of
Police. Just note down the luncheon, and give to the head waiter with
instructions to reserve me my usual table. I am assisting the French
Police in an important case. _The fee_--" he paused--"is considerable.
Are you ready, Miss Ganges?"

"Quite ready," said Tuppence, her stylo poised.

"We will start with that special salad of Shrimps that they have here.
Then to follow--let me see, _to follow_--Yes. Omelette Blitz, and
perhaps a couple of _Tournedos à l'Étranger_."

He looked up, catching the Duke's eye.

"You will forgive me, I hope," he murmured. "Ah! yes, _Soufflé en
surprise_. That will conclude the repast. A most interesting man, the
French prefect. You know him, perhaps?"

The other replied in the negative, as Tuppence rose and went to speak
to the head waiter. Presently she returned, just as the coffee was
brought.

Tommy drank a large cup of it, sipping it slowly, then rose.

"My cane, Miss Ganges? Thank you. Directions, please?"

It was a moment of agony for Tuppence.

"One right, eighteen straight. About the fifth step, there is a waiter
serving the table on your left."

Swinging his cane jauntily, Tommy set out. Tuppence kept close beside
him, and endeavored unobtrusively to steer him. All went well until
they were just passing out through the doorway. A man entered rather
hurriedly, and before Tuppence could warn the blind Mr. Blunt, he had
barged right into the newcomer. Explanations and apologies ensued.

At the door of the Blitz a smart landaulette was waiting. The Duke
himself aided Mr. Blunt to get in.

"Your car here, Harker?" he asked over his shoulder.

"Yes. Just round the corner."

"Take Miss Ganges in it, will you."

Before another word could be said, he had jumped in beside Tommy, and
the car rolled smoothly away.

"A very delicate matter," murmured the Duke. "I can soon acquaint you
with all the details."

Tommy raised his hand to his head.

"I can remove my eyeshade now," he observed pleasantly. "It was only
the glare of artificial light in the Restaurant necessitated its use."

But his arm was jerked down sharply. At the same time he felt something
hard and round being poked between his ribs. "No, my dear Mr. Blunt,"
said the Duke's voice--but a voice that seemed suddenly different.
"You will not remove that eyeshade. You will sit perfectly still and
not move in any way. You understand? I don't want this pistol of mine
to go off. You see, I happen not to be the Duke of Blairgowrie at
all. I borrowed his name for the occasion, knowing that you would not
refuse to accompany such a celebrated client. I am something much more
prosaic--a ham merchant who has lost his wife."

He felt the start the other gave.

"That tells you something," he laughed. "My dear young man, you have
been incredibly foolish. I'm afraid--I'm very much afraid that your
activities will be curtailed in future."

He spoke the last words with a sinister relish.

Tommy sat motionless. He did not reply to the other's taunts.

Presently the car slackened its pace and drew up.

"Just a minute," said the pseudo Duke. He twisted a handkerchief deftly
into Tommy's mouth, and drew up his scarf over it.

"In case you should be foolish enough to think of calling for help," he
explained suavely.

The door of the car opened and the chauffeur stood ready. He and his
master took Tommy between them and propelled him rapidly up some steps
and in at the door of a house.

The door closed behind them. There was a rich oriental smell in the
air. Tommy's feet sank deep into velvet pile. He was propelled in the
same fashion up a flight of stairs and into a room which he judged
to be at the back of the house. Here the two men bound his hands
together. The chauffeur went out again, and the other removed the gag.

"You may speak freely now," he announced pleasantly. "What have you to
say for yourself, young man?"

Tommy cleared his throat and eased the aching corners of his mouth.

"I hope you haven't lost my hollow cane," he said mildly. "It cost me a
lot to have that made."

"You have nerve," said the other, after a minute's pause. "Or else you
are just a fool. Don't you understand that I have got you--got you in
the hollow of my hand? That you're absolutely in my power? That no one
who knows you is ever likely to see you again?"

"Can't we cut out the melodrama?" asked Tommy plaintively. "Have I got
to say 'You villain, I'll foil you yet?' That sort of thing is so very
much out of date."

"What about the girl?" said the other, watching him. "Doesn't that move
you?"

"Putting two and two together during my enforced silence just now,"
said Tommy, "I have come to the inevitable conclusion that that chatty
lad Harker is another of the doers of desperate deeds, and that
therefore my unfortunate secretary will shortly join this little tea
party."

"Right as to one point, but wrong on the other. Mrs. Beresford--you see
I know all about you--Mrs. Beresford will not be brought here. That is
a little precaution I took. It occurred to me that just probably your
friends in high places might be keeping you shadowed. In that case, by
dividing the pursuit, you could not both be trailed. I should still
keep one in my hands. I am waiting now--"

He broke off, as the door opened. The chauffeur spoke.

"We've not been followed, sir. It's all clear."

"Good. You can go, Gregory."

The door closed again.

"So far, so good," said the 'Duke.' "And now what are we to do with
you, Mr. Beresford Blunt?"

"I wish you'd take this confounded eyeshade off me," said Tommy.

"I think not. With it on, you are truly blind--without it you would see
as well as I do--and that would not suit my little plan. For I have a
plan. You are fond of sensational fiction, Mr. Blunt. This little game
that you and your wife were playing to-day proves that. Now I too have
arranged a little game--something rather ingenious, as I am sure you
will admit when I explain it to you.

"You see, this floor on which you are standing is made of metal,
and here and there on its surface are little projections. I touch
a switch--so." A sharp click sounded. "Now the electric current is
switched on. To tread on one of those little knobs now means--death!
You understand? If you could see ... but you cannot see. You are in the
dark. That is the game--Blindman's Buff with death. If you can reach
the door in safety--freedom! But I think that long before you reach it
you will have trodden on one of the danger spots. And that will be very
amusing--for me!"

He came forward and unbound Tommy's hands. Then he handed him his cane
with a little ironical bow.

"The blind Problemist. Let us see if he will solve this problem. I
shall stand here with my pistol ready. If you raise your hands to your
head to remove that eyeshade, I shoot. Is that clear?"

"Perfectly clear," said Tommy. He was rather pale, but determined. "I
haven't got a dog's chance, I suppose?"

"Oh! that--" the other shrugged his shoulders.

"Damned ingenious devil, aren't you?" said Tommy. "But you've forgotten
one thing. May I light a cigarette, by the way? My poor little heart's
going pit a pat."

"You may light a cigarette--but no tricks. I am watching you, remember,
with the pistol ready."

"I'm not a performing dog," said Tommy. "I don't do tricks." He
extracted a cigarette from his case, then felt for a match box. "It's
all right. I'm not feeling for a revolver. But you know well enough
that I'm not armed. All the same, as I said before, you've forgotten
one thing."

"What is that?"

Tommy took a match from the box, and held it ready to strike.

"I'm blind and you can see. That's admitted. The advantage is with you.
But supposing we were both in the dark--eh? Where's your advantage
then?"

He struck the match.

The "Duke" laughed contemptuously.

"Thinking of shooting at the switch of the lights? Plunging the room
into darkness? It can't be done."

"Just so," said Tommy. "I can't give you darkness. But extremes meet,
you know. What about _light_?"

As he spoke, he touched the match to something he held in his hand, and
threw it down upon the table.

A blinding glare filled the room.

Just for a minute, blinded by the intense white light, the "Duke"
blinked and fell back, his pistol hand lowered.

He opened his eyes again to feel something sharp pricking his breast.

"Drop that pistol," ordered Tommy. "Drop it quick. I agree with you
that a hollow cane is a pretty rotten affair. So I didn't get one. A
good _sword stick_ is a very useful weapon, though. Don't you think so?
Almost as useful as magnesium wire. _Drop that pistol._"

Obedient to the necessity of that sharp point, the man dropped it.
Then, with a laugh, he sprang back.

"But I still have the advantage," he mocked. "For I can see, and you
cannot."

"That's where you're wrong," said Tommy. "I can see perfectly. This
eyeshade's a fake. I was going to put one over on Tuppence. Make one or
two bloomers to begin with, and then put in some perfectly marvellous
stuff towards the end of the lunch. Why, bless you, I could have walked
to the door and avoided all the knobs with perfect ease. But I didn't
trust you to play a sporting game. You'd never have let me get out of
this alive. Careful now--"

For, with his face distorted with rage, the "Duke" sprang forward,
forgetting in his fury to look where he put his feet.

There was a sudden blue crackle of flame, and he swayed for a minute,
then fell like a log. A faint odor of singed flesh filled the room,
mingling with a stronger smell of ozone.

"Whew," said Tommy.

He wiped his face.

Then, moving gingerly, and with every precaution, he reached the wall,
and touched the switch he had seen the other manipulate.

He crossed the room to the door, opened it carefully, and looked out.
There was no one about. He went down the stairs and out through the
front door.

Safe in the street, he looked up at the house with a shudder, noting
the number. Then he hurried to the nearest telephone box.

There was a moment of agonising anxiety, and then a well known voice
spoke.

"Tuppence, thank goodness!"

"Yes, I'm all right. I got all your points. The Fee, Shrimp, Come to
the Blitz and follow the two strangers. Albert got there in time, and
when we went off in separate cars, followed me in a taxi, saw where
they took me, and rang up the police."

"Albert's a good lad," said Tommy. "Chivalrous. I was pretty sure he'd
choose to follow you. But I've been worried, all the same. I've got
lots to tell you. I'm coming straight back now. And the first thing
I shall do when I get back is to write a thumping big cheque for St.
Dunstan's. Lord, it must be awful not to be able to see."




                              CHAPTER XI

                          THE MAN IN THE MIST


Tommy was not pleased with life. Blunt's Brilliant Detectives had met
with a reverse, distressing to their pride if not to their pockets.
Called in professionally to elucidate the mystery of a stolen pearl
necklace at Adlington Hall, Adlington, Blunt's Brilliant Detectives
had failed to make good. Whilst Tommy, hard on the track of a gambling
Countess, was tracking her in the disguise of a Roman Catholic Priest,
and Tuppence was "getting off" with a nephew of the house on the golf
links, the local Inspector of Police had unemotionally arrested the
second footman who proved to be a thief well known at headquarters and
who admitted his guilt without making any bones about it.

Tommy and Tuppence, therefore, had withdrawn with what dignity they
could muster, and were at the present moment solacing themselves with
cocktails at the Grand Adlington Hotel. Tommy still wore his clerical
disguise.

"Hardly a Father Brown touch, that," he remarked gloomily. "And yet
I've got just the right kind of umbrella."

"It wasn't a Father Brown problem," said Tuppence. "One needs a certain
atmosphere from the start. One must be doing something quite ordinary,
and then bizarre things begin to happen. That's the idea."

"Unfortunately," said Tommy, "we have to return to town. Perhaps
something bizarre will happen on the way to the station."

He raised the glass he was holding to his lips, but the liquid in it
was suddenly spilled, as a heavy hand smacked him on the shoulder, and
a voice to match the hand boomed out words of greeting.

"Upon my soul, it is! Old Tommy! And Mrs. Tommy too. Where did you blow
in from? Haven't seen or heard anything of you for years."

"Why, it's Bulger!" said Tommy, setting down what was left of the
cocktail, and turning to look at the intruder, a big square-shouldered
man of thirty years of age, with a round red beaming face, and dressed
in golfing kit. "Good old Bulger!"

"But I say, old chap," said Bulger (whose real name by the way, was
Mervyn Estcourt), "I never knew you'd taken orders. Fancy you a
blinking parson."

Tuppence burst out laughing, and Tommy looked embarrassed. And then
they suddenly became conscious of a fourth person.

A tall slender creature, with very golden hair and very round blue
eyes, almost impossibly beautiful, with an effect of really expensive
black topped by wonderful ermines, and very large pearl earrings. She
was smiling. And her smile said many things. It asserted, for instance,
that she knew perfectly well that she herself was the thing best worth
looking at certainly in England, and possibly in the whole world. She
was not vain about it in any way, but she just knew, with certainty and
confidence, that it was so.

Both Tommy and Tuppence recognised her immediately. They had seen her
three times in "The Secret of the Heart," and an equal number of times
in that other great success, "Pillars of Fire," and in innumerable
other plays. There was, perhaps, no other actress in England who had so
firm a hold on the British public, as Miss Gilda Glen. She was reported
to be the most beautiful woman in England. It was also rumored that she
was the stupidest.

"Old friends of mine, Miss Glen," said Estcourt, with a tinge of
apology in his voice for having presumed, even for a moment, to forget
such a radiant creature. "Tommy, and Mrs. Tommy, let me introduce you
to Miss Gilda Glen."

The ring of pride in his voice was unmistakable. By merely being seen
in his company, Miss Glen had conferred great glory upon him.

The actress was staring with frank interest at Tommy.

"Are you really a Priest?" she asked. "A Roman Catholic Priest, I mean?
Because I thought they didn't have wives."

Estcourt went off in a boom of laughter again.

"That's good," he exploded. "You sly dog, Tommy. Glad he hasn't
renounced you, Mrs. Tommy, with all the rest of the pomps and vanities."

Gilda Glen took not the faintest notice of him. She continued to stare
at Tommy with puzzled eyes.

"Are you a Priest?" she demanded.

"Very few of us are what we seem to be," said Tommy gently. "My
profession is not unlike that of a Priest. I don't give Absolution--but
I listen to Confessions--I--"

"Don't you listen to him," interrupted Estcourt. "He's pulling your
leg."

"If you're not a clergyman, I don't see why you're dressed up like
one," she puzzled. "That is, unless--"

"Not a criminal flying from justice," said Tommy. "The other thing."

"Oh!" she frowned, and looked at him with beautiful bewildered eyes.

"I wonder if she'll ever get that," thought Tommy to himself. "Not
unless I put it in words of one syllable for her, I should say."

Aloud he said:

"Know anything about the trains back to town, Bulger? We've got to be
pushing for home. How far is it to the station?"

"Ten minutes' walk. But no hurry. Next train up is the 6.35 and it's
only about twenty to six now. You've just missed one."

"Which way is it to the station from here?"

"Sharp to the left when you turn out of the Hotel. Then--let me
see--down Morgan's Avenue would be the best way, wouldn't it?"

"Morgan's Avenue?" Miss Glen started violently, and stared at him with
startled eyes.

"I know what you're thinking of," said Estcourt, laughing. "The Ghost.
Morgan's Avenue is bounded by the cemetery on one side, and tradition
has it that a policeman who met his death by violence gets up and walks
on his old beat up and down Morgan's Avenue. A spook policeman! Can
you beat it? But lots of people swear to having seen him."

"A policeman?" said Miss Glen. She shivered a little. "But there aren't
really any ghosts, are there? I mean--there aren't such things?"

She got up, folding her wrap tighter round her.

"Good bye," she said vaguely.

She had ignored Tuppence completely throughout, and now she did not
even glance in her direction. But over her shoulder she threw one
puzzled questioning glance at Tommy.

Just as she got to the door, she encountered a tall man with grey hair
and a puffy red face who uttered an exclamation of surprise. His hand
on her arm, he led her through the doorway, talking in an animated
fashion.

"Beautiful creature, isn't she?" said Estcourt. "Brains of a rabbit.
Rumor has it that she's going to marry Lord Leconbury. That was
Leconbury in the doorway."

"He doesn't look a very nice sort of man to marry," remarked Tuppence.

Estcourt shrugged his shoulders.

"A title has a kind of glamor still, I suppose," he said. "And
Leconbury is not an impoverished peer by any means. She'll be in
clover. Nobody knows where she sprang from. Pretty near the gutter, I
daresay. There's something deuced mysterious about her being down here
anyway. She's not staying at the Hotel. And when I tried to find out
where she was staying, she snubbed me--snubbed me quite crudely, in the
only way she knows. Blessed if I know what it's all about."

He glanced at his watch and uttered an exclamation.

"I must be off. Jolly glad to have seen you two again. We must have a
bust in town together some night. So long."

He hurried away, and as he did so, a page approached with a note on a
salver. The note was unaddressed.

"But it's for you, sir," he said to Tommy. "From Miss Gilda Glen."

Tommy tore it open and read it with some curiosity. Inside were a few
lines written in a straggling untidy hand.

    I'm not sure, but I think you might be able to help me. And you'll
    be going that way to the station. Could you be at The White House,
    Morgan's Avenue, at ten minutes past six?

                                                       Yours sincerely,
                                                            Gilda Glen.

Tommy nodded to the page who departed, and then handed the note to
Tuppence.

"Extraordinary," said Tuppence. "Is it because she still thinks you're
a Priest?"

"No," said Tommy thoughtfully. "I should say it's because she's at last
taken in that I'm not one. Hullo! what's this?"

"This" was a young man with flaming red hair, a pugnacious jaw and
appallingly shabby clothes. He had walked into the room and was now
striding up and down muttering to himself.

"Hell!" said the red haired man, loudly and forcibly. "That's what I
say--Hell!"

He dropped into a chair near the young couple and stared at them
moodily.

"Damn all women, that's what I say," said the young man, eyeing
Tuppence ferociously. "Oh! all right, kick up a row if you like.
Have me turned out of the Hotel! It won't be for the first time. Why
shouldn't we say what we think? Why should we go about bottling up our
feelings, and smirking, and saying things exactly like everyone else?
I don't feel pleasant and polite. I feel like getting hold of someone
round the throat and gradually choking them to death."

He paused.

"Any particular person?" asked Tuppence. "Or just anybody?"

"One particular person," said the young man grimly.

"This is very interesting," said Tuppence. "Won't you tell us some
more?"

"My name's Reilly," said the red haired man. "James Reilly. You may
have heard it. I wrote a little volume of Pacifist poems--good stuff,
although I say so."

"_Pacifist Poems?_" said Tuppence.

"Yes--why not?" demanded Mr. Reilly belligerently.

"Oh! nothing," said Tuppence hastily.

"I'm for peace all the time," said Mr. Reilly fiercely. "To Hell with
war. And women! Women! Did you see that creature who was trailing
around here just now? Gilda Glen, she calls herself. Gilda Glen! God!
how I've worshipped that woman. And I'll tell you this--if she's got
a heart at all, it's on my side. She cared once for me, and I could
make her care again. And if she sells herself to that muck heap
Leconbury--well, God help her. I'd as soon kill her with my own hands."

And on this, suddenly, he rose and rushed from the room.

Tommy raised his eyebrows.

"A somewhat excitable gentleman," he murmured. "Well, Tuppence, shall
we start?"

A fine mist was coming up as they emerged from the Hotel into the cool
outer air. Obeying Estcourt's directions, they turned sharp to the
left, and in a few minutes they came to a turning labelled Morgan's
Avenue.

The mist had increased. It was soft and white, and hurried past them in
little eddying drifts. To their left was the high wall of the Cemetery,
on their right a row of small houses. Presently these ceased, and a
high hedge took their place.

"Tommy," said Tuppence. "I'm beginning to feel jumpy. The mist--and the
silence. As though we were miles from anywhere."

"One does feel like that," agreed Tommy. "All alone in the world. It's
the effect of the mist, and not being able to see ahead of one."

Tuppence nodded. "Just our footsteps echoing on the pavement. What's
that?"

"What's what?"

"I thought I heard other footsteps behind us."

"You'll be seeing the ghost in a minute if you work yourself up like
this," said Tommy kindly. "Don't be so nervy. Are you afraid the spook
policeman will lay his hand on your shoulder?"

Tuppence emitted a shrill squeal.

"Don't, Tommy. Now you've put it into my head."

She craned her head back over her shoulder, trying to peer into the
white veil that was wrapped all round them.

"There they are again," she whispered. "No, they're in front now. Oh!
Tommy, don't say you can't hear them?"

"I do hear something. Yes, it's footsteps behind us. Somebody else
walking this way to catch the train. I wonder--"

He stopped suddenly, and stood still, and Tuppence gave a gasp.

For the curtain of mist in front of them suddenly parted in the most
artificial manner, and there, not twenty feet away a gigantic policeman
suddenly appeared, as though materialised out of the fog. One minute
he was not there, the next minute he was--so at least it seemed to the
rather superheated imaginations of the two watchers. Then as the mist
rolled back still more, a little scene appeared, as though set on a
stage.

The big blue policeman, a scarlet pillar box, and on the right of the
road the outlines of a white house.

"Red, white, and blue," said Tommy. "It's damned pictorial. Come on,
Tuppence, there's nothing to be afraid of."

For, as he had already seen, the policeman was a real policeman. And
moreover, he was not nearly so gigantic as he had at first seemed
looming up out of the mist.

But as they started forward, footsteps came from behind them. A man
passed them, hurrying along. He turned in at the gate of the White
House, ascended the steps, and beat a deafening tattoo upon the
knocker. He was admitted just as they reached the spot where the
policeman was standing staring after him.

"There's a gentleman seems to be in a hurry," commented the policeman.

He spoke in a slow reflective voice, as of one whose thoughts took some
time to mature.

"He's the sort of gentleman always would be in a hurry," remarked Tommy.

The policeman's stare, slow and rather suspicious, came round to rest
on his face.

"Friend of yours?" he demanded, and there was distinct suspicion now in
his voice.

"No," said Tommy. "He's not a friend of mine, but I happen to know who
he is. Name of Reilly."

"Ah!" said the policeman. "Well, I'd better be getting along."

"Can you tell me where the White House is?" asked Tommy.

The constable jerked his head sideways.

"This is it. Mrs. Honeycott's." He paused, and added evidently with
the idea of giving them valuable information: "Nervous party. Always
suspecting burglars is around. Always asking me to have a look around
the place. Middle-aged women get like that."

"Middle-aged, eh?" said Tommy. "Do you happen to know if there's a
young lady staying there?"

"A young lady," said the policeman, ruminating. "A young lady. No, I
can't say I know anything about that."

"She mayn't be staying here, Tommy," said Tuppence. "And anyway, she
mayn't be here yet. She could only have started just before we did."

"Ah!" said the policeman suddenly. "Now that I call it to mind, a young
lady did go in at this gate. I saw her as I was coming up the road.
About three or four minutes ago it might be."

"With ermine furs on?" asked Tuppence eagerly.

"She had some kind of white rabbit round her throat," admitted the
policeman.

Tuppence smiled. The policeman went on in the direction from which they
had just come, and they prepared to enter the gate of the White House.

Suddenly a faint muffled cry sounded from inside the house, and almost
immediately afterwards the front door opened and James Reilly came
rushing down the steps. His face was white and twisted, and his eyes
glared in front of him unseeingly. He staggered like a drunken man.

He passed Tommy and Tuppence as though he did not see them, muttering
to himself with a kind of dreadful repetition.

"My God! My God! Oh, my God!"

He clutched at the gate post, as though to steady himself, and then, as
though animated by sudden panic, he raced off down the road as hard as
he could go in the opposite direction to that taken by the policeman.




                              CHAPTER XII

                    THE MAN IN THE MIST (continued)


Tommy and Tuppence stared at each other in bewilderment.

"Well," said Tommy, "something's happened in that house to scare our
friend Reilly pretty badly."

Tuppence drew her finger absently across the gate post.

"He must have put his hand on some wet red paint somewhere," she said
idly.

"H'm," said Tommy. "I think we'd better go inside rather quickly. I
don't understand this business."

In the doorway of the house a white capped maid servant was standing,
almost speechless with indignation.

"Did you ever see the likes of that now, Father," she burst out,
as Tommy ascended the steps. "That fellow comes here, asks for the
young lady, rushes upstairs without how or by your leave. She lets
out a screech like a wild cat--and what wonder, poor pretty dear, and
straightway he comes rushing down again, with the white face on him,
like one who's seen a ghost. What will be the meaning of it all?"

"Who are you talking with at the front door, Ellen?" demanded a sharp
voice from the interior of the hall.

"Here's Missus," said Ellen, somewhat unnecessarily.

She drew back and Tommy found himself confronting a grey-haired,
middle-aged woman, with frosty blue eyes imperfectly concealed by pince
nez, and a spare figure clad in black with bugle trimming.

"Mrs. Honeycott?" said Tommy. "I came here to see Miss Glen."

Mrs. Honeycott gave him a sharp glance, then went on to Tuppence and
took in every detail of her appearance.

"Oh! you did, did you?" she said. "Well, you'd better come inside."

She led the way into the hall and along it into a room at the back of
the house facing on the garden. It was a fair sized room, but looked
smaller than it was, owing to the large amount of chairs and tables
crowded into it. A big fire burned in the grate, and a chintz covered
sofa stood at one side of it. The wall paper was a small grey stripe
with a festoon of roses round the top. Quantities of engravings and oil
paintings covered the walls.

It was a room almost impossible to associate with the expensive
personality of Miss Gilda Glen.

"Sit down," said Mrs. Honeycott. "To begin with, you'll excuse me
if I say I don't hold with the Roman Catholic religion. Never did
I think to see a Roman Catholic priest in my house. But if Gilda's
gone over to the Scarlet Woman it's only what's to be expected in a
life like hers--and I daresay it might be worse. She mightn't have
any religion at all. I should think more of Roman Catholics if their
priests were married--I always speak my mind. And to think of those
convents--quantities of beautiful young girls shut up there, and no one
knowing what becomes of them--well, it won't bear thinking about."

Mrs. Honeycott came to a full stop, and drew a deep breath.

Without entering upon a defence of the celibacy of the priesthood or
the other controversial points touched upon, Tommy went straight to the
point.

"I understand, Mrs. Honeycott, that Miss Glen is in this house."

"She is. Mind you, I don't approve. Marriage is marriage and your
husband's your husband. As you make your bed, so you must lie on it."

"I don't quite understand--" began Tommy, bewildered.

"I thought as much. That's the reason I brought you in here. You can go
up to Gilda after I've spoken my mind. She came to me--after all these
years, think of it!--and asked me to help her. Wanted me to see this
man and persuade him to agree to a divorce. I told her straight out I'd
have nothing whatever to do with it. Divorce is sinful. But I couldn't
refuse my own sister shelter in my house, could I now?"

"Your sister?" exclaimed Tommy.

"Yes, Gilda's my sister. Didn't she tell you?"

Tommy stared at her open mouthed. The thing seemed fantastically
impossible. Then he remembered that the angelic beauty of Gilda Glen
had been in evidence for many years. He had been taken to see her
act as quite a small boy. Yes, it was possible after all. But what a
piquant contrast. So it was from this lower middle class respectability
that Gilda Glen had sprung. How well she had guarded her secret!

"I am not yet quite clear," he said. "Your sister is married?"

"Ran away to be married as a girl of seventeen," said Mrs. Honeycott
succinctly. "Some common fellow far below her in station. And our
father a reverend. It was a disgrace. Then she left her husband and
went on the stage. Play acting! I've never been inside a theatre in my
life. I hold no truck with wickedness. Now, after all these years, she
wants to divorce the man. Means to marry some big wig, I suppose. But
her husband's standing firm--not to be bullied and not to be bribed--I
admire him for it."

"What is his name?" asked Tommy suddenly.

"That's an extraordinary thing now, but I can't remember! It's nearly
twenty years ago, remember, since I heard it. My father forbade it to
be mentioned. And I've refused to discuss the matter with Gilda. She
knows what I think, and that's enough for her."

"It wasn't Reilly, was it?"

"Might have been. I really can't say. It's gone clean out of my head."

"The man I mean was here just now."

"That man! I thought he was an escaped lunatic. I'd been in the kitchen
giving orders to Ellen. I'd just got back into this room, and was
wondering whether Gilda had come in yet (she has a latch key) when I
heard her. She hesitated a minute or two in the hall and then went
straight upstairs. About three minutes later, all this tremendous rat
tatting began. I went out into the hall, and just saw a man rushing
upstairs. Then there was a sort of cry upstairs and presently down he
came again and rushed out like a madman. Pretty goings on."

Tommy rose.

"Mrs. Honeycott, let us go upstairs at once. I am afraid--"

"What of?"

"Afraid that you have no red wet paint in the house."

Mrs. Honeycott stared at him.

"Of course I haven't."

"That is what I feared," said Tommy gravely. "Please let us go to your
sister's room at once."

Momentarily silenced, Mrs. Honeycott led the way. They caught a glimpse
of Ellen in the hall, backing hastily into one of the rooms.

Mrs. Honeycott opened the first door at the top of the stairs. Tommy
and Tuppence entered close behind her.

Suddenly she gave a gasp and fell back.

A motionless figure in black and ermine lay stretched on the sofa.
The face was untouched, a beautiful soulless face like a mature child
asleep. The wound was on the side of the head, a heavy blow with some
blunt instrument had crushed in the skull. Blood was dripping slowly
onto the floor, but the wound itself had long since ceased to bleed....

Tommy examined the prostrate figure, his face very white.

"So," he said at last, "he didn't strangle her after all."

"What do you mean? Who?" cried Mrs. Honeycott. "Is she dead?"

"Oh! yes, Mrs. Honeycott, she's dead. Murdered. The question is--by
whom? Not that it is much of a question. Funny--for all his ranting
words, I didn't think the fellow had got it in him."

He paused a minute, then turned to Tuppence with decision.

"Will you go out and get a policeman, or ring up the police station
from somewhere?"

Tuppence nodded. She, too, was very white. Tommy led Mrs. Honeycott
downstairs again.

"I don't want there to be any mistake about this," he said. "Do you
know exactly what time it was when your sister came in?"

"Yes, I do," said Mrs. Honeycott. "Because I was just setting the clock
on five minutes as I have to do every evening. It gains just five
minutes a day. It was exactly eight minutes past six by my watch, and
that never loses or gains a second."

Tommy nodded. That agreed perfectly with the policeman's story. He had
seen the woman with the white furs go in at the gate, probably three
minutes had elapsed before he and Tuppence had reached the same spot.
He had glanced at his own watch then and had noted that it was just one
minute after the time of their appointment.

There was just the faint chance that someone might have been waiting
for Gilda Glen in the room upstairs. But if so, he must still be hiding
in the house. No one but James Reilly had left it.

He ran upstairs and made a quick but efficient search of the premises.
But there was no one concealed anywhere.

Then he spoke to Ellen. After breaking the news to her, and waiting for
her first lamentations and invocations to the Saints to have exhausted
themselves, he asked a few questions.

"Had anyone come to the house that afternoon asking for Miss Glen? No
one whatsoever. Had she herself been upstairs at all that evening?
Yes, she'd gone up at six o'clock as usual to draw the curtains--or it
might have been a few minutes after six. Anyway it was just before that
wild fellow come breaking the knocker down. She'd run downstairs to
answer the door. And him a black hearted murderer all the time."

Tommy let it go at that. But he still felt a curious pity for Reilly,
an unwillingness to believe the worst of him. And yet there was no one
else who could have murdered Gilda Glen. Mrs. Honeycott and Ellen had
been the only two people in the house.

He heard voices in the hall, and went out to find Tuppence and the
policeman from the beat outside. The latter had produced a notebook,
and a rather blunt pencil which he licked surreptitiously. He went
upstairs and surveyed the victim stolidly, merely remarking that if he
was to touch anything the Inspector would give him beans. He listened
to all Mrs. Honeycott's hysterical outbursts and confused explanations,
and occasionally he wrote something down. His presence was calming and
soothing.

Tommy finally got him alone for a minute or two on the steps outside,
ere he departed to telephone headquarters.

"Look here," said Tommy. "You saw the deceased turning in at the gate,
you say. Are you sure she was alone?"

"Oh, she was alone all right. Nobody with her."

"And between that time and when you met us, nobody came out of the
gate?"

"Not a soul."

"You'd have seen them if they had?"

"Of course I should. Nobody come out till that wild chap did."

The majesty of the law moved portentously down the steps and paused by
the white gate post which bore the imprint of a hand in red.

"Kind of amateur he must have been," he said pityingly. "To leave a
thing like that."

Then he swung out into the road.

       *       *       *       *       *

It was the day after the crime. Tommy and Tuppence were still at the
Grand Hotel, but Tommy had thought it prudent to discard his clerical
disguise.

James Reilly had been apprehended, and was in custody. His solicitor,
Mr. Marvell, had just finished a lengthy conversation with Tommy on the
subject of the crime.

"I never would have believed it of James Reilly," he said simply. "He's
always been a man of violent speech, but that's all."

Tommy nodded.

"If you disperse energy in speech, it doesn't leave you too much over
for action. What I realise is that I shall be one of the principal
witnesses against him. That conversation he had with me just before the
crime was particularly damning. And in spite of everything, I like the
man, and if there was anyone else to suspect, I should believe him to
be innocent. What's his own story?"

The solicitor pursed up his lips.

"He declares that he found her lying there dead. But that's impossible,
of course. He's using the first lie that comes into his head."

"Because, if he happened to be speaking the truth, it would mean
that our garrulous Mrs. Honeycott committed the crime--and that is
fantastic. Yes, he must have done it."

"The maid heard her cry out, remember."

"The maid--yes--"

Tommy was silent a moment. Then he said thoughtfully:

"What credulous creatures we are, really. We believe evidence as though
it were gospel truth. And what is it really? Only the impressions
conveyed to the mind by the senses--and suppose they're the wrong
impressions?"

The lawyer shrugged his shoulders.

"Oh! we all know that there are unreliable witnesses, witnesses who
remember more and more as time goes on, with no real intention to
deceive."

"I don't mean only that. I mean all of us--we say things that aren't
really so, and never know that we've done so. For instance, both you
and I, without doubt, have said some time or other, 'There's the post,'
when what we really meant was that we'd heard a double knock and the
rattle of the letter box. Nine times out of ten we'd be right, and it
would be the post, but just possibly the tenth time it might be only a
little urchin playing a joke on us. See what I mean?"

"Ye-es," said Mr. Marvell slowly. "But I don't see what you're driving
at?"

"Don't you? I'm not sure that I do myself. But I'm beginning to see.
It's like the stick, Tuppence. You remember? One end of it pointed
one way--but the other end always points the opposite way. It depends
whether you get hold of it by the right end. Doors open--but they also
shut. People go upstairs, but they also go downstairs. Boxes shut, but
they also open."

"What _do_ you mean?" demanded Tuppence.

"It's so ridiculously easy, really," said Tommy. "And yet it's only
just come to me. How do you know when a person's come into the house?
You hear the door open and bang to, and if you're expecting anyone to
come in, you will be quite sure it is them. But it might just as easily
be someone going _out_."

"But Miss Glen didn't go out?"

"No, I know _she_ didn't. But someone else did--the murderer."

"But how did she get in, then?"

"She came in whilst Mrs. Honeycott was in the kitchen talking to Ellen.
They didn't hear her. Mrs. Honeycott went back to the drawing-room,
wondered if her sister had come in and began to put the clock right,
and then, as she thought, she heard her come in and go upstairs."

"Well, what about that? The footsteps going upstairs?"

"That was Ellen, going up to draw the curtains. You remember, Mrs.
Honeycott said her sister paused before going up. That pause was just
the time needed for Ellen to come out from the kitchen into the hall.
She just missed seeing the murderer."

"But Tommy," cried Tuppence. "The cry she gave?"

"That was James Reilly. Didn't you notice what a high pitched voice he
has? In moments of great emotion, men often squeal just like a woman."

"But the murderer? We'd have seen him?"

"We _did_ see him. We even stood talking to him. Do you remember the
sudden way that policeman appeared? That was because he stepped out of
the gate, just after the mist cleared from the road. It made us jump,
don't you remember? After all, though we never think of them as that,
policemen are men just like any other men. They love and they hate.
They marry....

"I think Gilda Glen met her husband suddenly just outside that gate,
and took him in with her to thrash the matter out. He hadn't Reilly's
relief of violent words, remember. He just saw red--and he had his
truncheon handy...."




                             CHAPTER XIII

                             THE CRACKLER


"Tuppence," said Tommy, "we shall have to move into a much larger
office."

"Nonsense," said Tuppence. "You mustn't get swollen headed and think
you are a millionaire just because you solved two or three twopenny
halfpenny cases with the aid of the most amazing luck."

"What some call luck, others call skill."

"Of course if you really think you are Sherlock Holmes, Thorndyke,
McCarty and the Brothers Okewood all rolled into one there is no more
to be said. Personally I would much rather have luck on my side than
all the skill in the world."

"Perhaps there is something in that," conceded Tommy. "All the same,
Tuppence, we do need a larger office."

"Why?"

"The Classics," said Tommy. "We need several hundreds of yards of extra
book shelf if Edgar Wallace is to be properly represented."

"We haven't had an Edgar Wallace case yet."

"I am afraid we never shall," said Tommy. "If you notice he never does
give the amateur sleuth much of a chance. It is all stern Scotland Yard
kind of stuff--the real thing and no base counterfeit."

Albert, the office boy, appeared at the door.

"Inspector Marriot to see you," he announced.

"The mystery man of Scotland Yard," murmured Tommy.

"The busiest of the Busies," said Tuppence. "Or is it 'Noses?' I always
get mixed between Busies and Noses."

The Inspector advanced upon them with a beaming smile of welcome.

"Well and how are things?" he asked breezily. "None the worse for our
little adventure the other day?"

"Oh! rather not," said Tuppence. "Too, too marvellous, wasn't it?"

"Well, I don't know that I would describe it exactly that way myself,"
said Marriot cautiously.

"What has brought you here to-day, Marriot?" asked Tommy. "Not just
solicitude for our nervous systems, is it?"

"No," said the Inspector. "It is work for the brilliant Mr. Blunt."

"Ha!" said Tommy. "Let me put my brilliant expression on."

"I have come to make you a proposition, Mr. Beresford. What would you
say to rounding up a really big gang?"

"Is there such a thing?" asked Tommy.

"What do you mean, is there such a thing?"

"I always thought that gangs were confined to fiction--like master
crooks, and super criminals."

"The master crook isn't very common," agreed the Inspector. "But Lord
bless you, sir, there's any amount of gangs knocking about."

"I don't know that I should be at my best dealing with a gang," said
Tommy. "The amateur crime, the crime of quiet family life--that is
where I flatter myself that I shine. Drama of strong domestic interest.
That's the thing--with Tuppence at hand to supply all those little
feminine details which are so important, and so apt to be ignored by
the denser male."

His eloquence was arrested abruptly, as Tuppence threw a cushion at him
and requested him not to talk nonsense.

"Will have your little bit of fun, won't you, sir?" said Inspector
Marriot, smiling paternally at them both. "If you'll not take offence
at my saying so, it's a pleasure to see two young people enjoying life
as much as you two do."

"Do we enjoy life?" said Tuppence, opening her eyes very wide. "I
suppose we do. I've never thought about it before."

"To return to that gang you were talking about," said Tommy. "In spite
of my extensive private practice, Duchesses, millionaires, and all the
best charwomen--I might perhaps condescend to look into the matter for
you. I don't like to see Scotland Yard at fault. You'll have the Daily
Mail after you before you know where you are."

"As I said before, you must have your bit of fun. Well, it's like
this." Again he hitched his chair forward. "There's any amount of
forged notes going about just now--hundreds of 'em! The amount of
counterfeit Treasury notes in circulation would surprise you. Most
artistic bit of work it is. Here's one of 'em."

He took a one pound note from his pocket and handed it to Tommy.

"Looks all right, doesn't it?"

Tommy examined the note with great interest.

"By Jove, I'd never spot there was anything wrong with that."

"No more would most people. Now here's a genuine one. I'll show you the
differences--very slight they are, but you'll soon learn to tell them
apart. Take this magnifying glass."

At the end of five minutes' coaching, both Tommy and Tuppence were
fairly expert.

"What do you want us to do, Inspector Marriot?" asked Tuppence. "Just
keep our eyes open for these things?"

"A great deal more than that, Mrs. Beresford. I'm pinning my faith on
you to get to the bottom of the matter. You see, we've discovered that
the notes are being circulated from the West End. Somebody pretty high
up in the social scale is doing the distributing. They're passing them
the other side of the Channel as well. Now there's a certain person who
is interesting us very much. A Major Laidlaw--perhaps you've heard the
name?"

"I think I have," said Tommy. "Connected with racing, isn't that it?"

"Yes. Major Laidlaw is pretty well known in connection with the
Turf. There's nothing actually against him, but there's a general
impression that he's been a bit too smart over one or two rather
shady transactions. Men in the know look queer when he's mentioned.
Nobody knows much of his past or where he came from. He's got a very
attractive French wife who's seen about everywhere with a train of
admirers. They must spend a lot of money, the Laidlaws, and I'd like
to know where it comes from."

"Possibly from the train of admirers," suggested Tommy.

"That's the general idea. But I'm not so sure. It may be coincidence,
but a lot of notes have been forthcoming from a certain very smart
little gambling club which is much frequented by the Laidlaws and their
set. This racing, gambling set gets rid of a lot of loose money in
notes. There couldn't be a better way of getting it into circulation."

"And where do we come in?"

"This way. Young St. Vincent and his wife are friends of yours, I
understand? They're in pretty thick with the Laidlaw set--though not
as thick as they were. Through them it will be easy for you to get a
footing in the same set in a way that none of our people could attempt.
There's no likelihood of their spotting you. You'll have an ideal
opportunity."

"What have we got to find out exactly?"

"Where they get the stuff from, if they _are_ passing it."

"Quite so," said Tommy. "Major Laidlaw goes out with an empty suitcase.
When he returns it is crammed to the bursting point with Treasury
notes. How is it done? I sleuth him and find out. Is that the idea?"

"More or less. But don't neglect the lady, and her father, M.
Heroulade. Remember the notes are being passed on both sides of the
Channel."

"My dear Marriot," exclaimed Tommy reproachfully. "Blunt's Brilliant
Detectives do not know the meaning of the word neglect."

The Inspector rose.

"Well, good luck to you," he said, and departed.

"Slush," said Tuppence enthusiastically.

"Eh?" said Tommy perplexed.

"Counterfeit money," explained Tuppence. "It is always called Slush. I
know I'm right. Oh, Tommy, we have got an Edgar Wallace case. At last
we are Busies."

"We are," said Tommy, "and we are out to get The Crackler and we will
get him good."

"Did you say The Cackler or The Crackler?"

"The Crackler."

"Oh, what is a Crackler?"

"A new word that I have coined," said Tommy. "Descriptive of one who
passes false notes into circulation. Bank notes crackle; therefore he
is called a Crackler. Nothing could be more simple."

"That is rather a good idea," said Tuppence, "it makes it seem more
real. I like the Rustler myself. Much more descriptive and sinister."

"No," said Tommy, "I said the Crackler first and I stick to it."

"I shall enjoy this case," said Tuppence. "Lots of Night Clubs and
cocktails in it. I shall buy some eyelash black to-morrow."

"Your eyelashes are black already," objected her husband.

"I could make them blacker," said Tuppence, "and cherry lip stick would
be useful too. That ultra bright kind."

"Tuppence," said Tommy, "you're a real rake at heart. What a good thing
it is that you are married to a sober steady middle-aged man like
myself."

"You wait," said Tuppence. "When you have been to the Python Club a bit
you mayn't be so sober yourself."

Tommy produced from a cupboard various bottles, two glasses, and a
cocktail shaker.

"Let's start now," he said. "We are after you, Crackler, and we mean to
get you."




                              CHAPTER XIV

                       THE CRACKLER (continued)


Making the acquaintance of the Laidlaws proved an easy affair. Tommy
and Tuppence, young, well dressed, eager for life and with apparently
money to burn, were soon made free of that particular coterie in which
the Laidlaws had their being.

Major Laidlaw was a tall fair man, typically English in appearance,
with a hearty sportsmanlike manner, slightly belied by the hard lines
round his eyes and the occasional quick sideways glance that assorted
oddly with his supposed character.

He was a very dexterous card player, and Tommy noticed that when the
stakes were high he seldom rose from the table a loser.

Marguerite Laidlaw was quite a different proposition. She was a
charming creature, with the slenderness of a wood nymph and the face of
a Greuze picture. Her dainty broken English was fascinating, and Tommy
felt that it was no wonder most men were her slaves. She seemed to take
a great fancy to Tommy from the first, and playing his part, he allowed
himself to be swept into her train.

"My Tommee," she would say. "But positively I cannot go without my
Tommee. His 'air, eet ees the color of the sunset, ees eet not?"

Her father was a more sinister figure. Very correct, very upright, with
his little black beard and his watchful eyes.

Tuppence was the first to report progress. She came to Tommy with ten
one pound notes.

"Have a look at these. They're wrong 'uns, aren't they?"

Tommy examined them and confirmed Tuppence's diagnosis.

"Where did you get them from?"

"That boy, Jimmy Faulkener. Marguerite Laidlaw gave them to him to put
on a horse for her. I said I wanted small notes, and gave him a tenner
in exchange."

"All new and crisp," said Tommy thoughtfully. "They can't have passed
through many hands. I suppose young Faulkener is all right?"

"Jimmy? Oh! he's a dear. He and I are becoming great friends."

"So I have noticed," said Tommy coldly. "Do you really think it is
necessary?"

"Oh! it isn't business," said Tuppence cheerily. "It's pleasure. He's
such a nice boy. I'm glad to get him out of that woman's clutches.
You've no idea of the amount of money she's cost him."

"It looks to me as though he were getting rather a pash for you,
Tuppence."

"I've thought the same myself sometimes. It's nice to know one's still
young and attractive, isn't it?"

"Your moral tone, Tuppence, is deplorably low. You look at these things
from the wrong point of view."

"I haven't enjoyed myself so much for years," declared Tuppence
shamelessly. "And anyway, what about you? Do I ever see you nowadays?
Aren't you always living in Marguerite Laidlaw's pocket?"

"Business," said Tommy crisply.

"But she is attractive, isn't she?"

"Not my type," said Tommy. "I don't admire her."

"Liar," laughed Tuppence. "But I always did think I'd rather marry a
liar than a fool."

"I suppose," said Tommy, "that there's no absolute necessity for a
husband to be either?"

But Tuppence merely threw him a pitying glance and withdrew.

Amongst Mrs. Laidlaw's train of admirers was a simple but extremely
wealthy gentleman of the name of Hank Ryder.

Mr. Ryder came from Alabama, and from the first he was disposed to make
a friend and confidant of Tommy.

"That's a wonderful woman, sir," said Mr. Ryder, following the lovely
Marguerite with reverential eyes. "Plumb full of civilisation. Can't
beat _la gaie France_, can you? When I'm near her, I feel as though I
was one of the Almighty's earliest experiments. I guess He'd got to get
His hand in before He attempted anything so lovely as that perfectly
lovely woman."

Tommy agreeing politely with these sentiments, Mr. Ryder unburdened
himself still further.

"Seems kind of a shame a lovely creature like that should have money
worries."

"Has she?" asked Tommy.

"You betcha life she has. Queer fish, Laidlaw. She's skeered of him.
Told me so. Daren't tell him about her little bills."

"Are they _little_ bills?" asked Tommy.

"Well--when I say little! After all, a woman's got to wear clothes, and
the less there are of them the more they cost, the way I figure it out.
And a pretty woman like that doesn't want to go about in last season's
goods. Cards too, the poor little thing's been mighty unlucky at cards.
Why, she lost fifty to me last night."

"She won two hundred from Jimmy Faulkener the night before," said Tommy
drily.

"Did she indeed? That relieves my mind some. By the way, there seems to
be a lot of dud notes floating around in your country just now. I paid
in a bunch at my bank this morning, and twenty-five of them were down
and outers, so the polite gentleman behind the counter informed me."

"That's rather a large proportion. Were they new looking?"

"New and crisp as they make 'em. Why, they were the ones Mrs. Laidlaw
paid over to me, I reckon. Wonder where she got 'em from. One of these
toughs on the race course as likely as not."

"Yes," said Tommy. "Very likely."

"You know, Mr. Beresford, I'm new to this sort of high life. All these
swell dames, and the rest of the outfit. Only made my pile a short
while back. Came right over to Yurrop to see life."

Tommy nodded. He made a mental note to the effect that with the aid of
Marguerite Laidlaw, Mr. Ryder would probably see a good deal of life
and that the price charged would be heavy.

Meantime, for the second time, he had evidenced that the forged notes
were being distributed pretty near at hand, and that in all probability
Marguerite Laidlaw had a hand in their distribution.

On the following night he himself was given a proof.

It was at that small select meeting place mentioned by Inspector
Marriot. There was dancing there, but the real attraction of the place
lay behind a pair of imposing folding doors. There were two rooms there
with green baize covered tables, where vast sums changed hands nightly.

Marguerite Laidlaw, rising at last to go, thrust a quantity of small
notes into Tommy's hands.

"They are so bulkee, Tommee--you will change them, yes? A beeg note.
See my so sweet leetle bag, it bulges him to distraction."

Tommy brought her the hundred pound note she asked for. Then in a quiet
corner, he examined the notes she had given him. At least a quarter of
them were counterfeit.

But where did she get her supplies from? To that he had as yet no
answer. By means of Albert's cooperation, he was almost sure that
Laidlaw was not the man. His movements had been watched closely and had
yielded no result.

Tommy suspected her father, the saturnine M. Heroulade. He went to and
fro to France fairly often. What could be simpler than to bring the
notes across with him? A false bottom to a trunk--something of that
kind.

Tommy strolled slowly out of the Club, absorbed in these thoughts, but
was suddenly recalled to immediate necessities. Outside in the street
was Mr. Hank P. Ryder, and it was clear at once that Mr. Ryder was not
strictly sober. At the moment he was trying to hang his hat on the
radiator of a car, and missing it by some inches every time.

"This goddarned hatshtand, this goddarned hatshtand," said Mr. Ryder
tearfully. "Not like that in the Shtates. Man can hang up hishhat every
night--every night, sir. You're wearing two hatshs. Never sheen a man
wearing two hatsh before. Mushtbe effectclimate."

"Perhaps I've got two heads," said Tommy gravely.

"Sho you have," said Mr. Ryder. "Thatsh odd. Thatsh remarkable fac.
Letsh have a cocktail. Prohibition--probishun--thatsh whatsh done
me in. I guess I'm drunk--constootionally drunk. Cocktailsh--mixed
'em--Angel's Kiss--that's Marguerite--lovely creature, fon' o' me
too. Horshes Neck, two Martinis--three Road to Ruinsh--no, roadshto
roon--mixed 'em all--in a beer tankard. Bet me I wouldn't--I shaid--to
hell, I shayed--"

Tommy interrupted.

"That's all right," he said soothingly. "Now what about getting home?"

"No home to go to," said Mr. Ryder sadly, and wept.

"What Hotel are you staying at?" asked Tommy.

"Can't go home," said Mr. Ryder. "Treasurehunt. Swell thing to do. She
did it. Whitechapel--White heartsh, white headsh shorrow to the grave--"

"Never mind that," said Tommy. "Where are you--"

But Mr. Ryder became suddenly dignified. He drew himself erect and
attained a sudden miraculous command over his speech.

"Young man, I'm telling you. Margee took me. In her car. Treasure
Hunting. Englisharishtocrashy all do it. Under the cobblestones. Five
hundred poundsh. Solemn thought, 'tis solemn thought. I'm _telling_
you, young man. You've been kind to me. I've got your welfare at heart,
sir, at heart. We Americans--"

Tommy interrupted him this time with even less ceremony.

"What's that you say? Mrs. Laidlaw took you in a car?"

The American nodded with a kind of owlish solemnity.

"To Whitechapel?" Again that owlish nod. "And you found five hundred
pounds there?"

Mr. Ryder struggled for words.

"S-she did," he corrected his questioner. "Left me outside. Outside the
door. Always left outside. It's kinder sad. Outside--always outside."

"Would you know your way there?"

"I guess so. Hank Ryder doesn't lose his bearings--"

Tommy hauled him along unceremoniously. He found his own car where it
was waiting, and presently they were bowling eastward. The cool air
revived Mr. Ryder. After slumping against Tommy's shoulder in a kind of
stupor, he awoke clear headed and refreshed.

"Say, boy, where are we?" he demanded.

"Whitechapel," said Tommy crisply. "Is this where you came with Mrs.
Laidlaw to-night?"

"It looks kinder familiar," admitted Mr. Ryder looking round. "Seems
to me we turned off to the left somewhere down here. That's it--that
street there."

Tommy turned off obediently. Mr. Ryder issued directions.

"That's it. Sure. And round to the right. Say, aren't the smells awful?
Yes, past the pub at the corner--sharp round, and stop at the mouth of
that little alley. But what's the big idea? Hand it to me. Some of the
oof left behind? Are we going to put one over on them?"

"That's exactly it," said Tommy. "We're going to put one over on them.
Rather a joke, isn't it?"

"I'll tell the world," assented Mr. Ryder. "Though I'm just a mite
hazed about it all," he ended wistfully.

Tommy got out and assisted Mr. Ryder to alight also. They advanced
into the alley way. On the left were the backs of a row of dilapidated
houses, most of which had doors opening into the alley. Mr. Ryder came
to a stop before one of these doors.

"In here she went," he declared. "It was this door--I'm plumb certain
of it."

"They all look very alike," said Tommy. "Reminds me of the story of the
soldier and the Princess. You remember, they made a cross on the door
to show which one it was. Shall we do the same?"

Laughing, he drew a piece of white chalk from his pocket and made a
rough cross low down on the door. Then he looked up at various dim
shapes that prowled high on the walls of the alley, one of which was
uttering a blood curdling yawl.

"Lots of cats about," he remarked cheerfully.

"What is the procedure?" asked Mr. Ryder. "Do we step inside?"

"Adopting due precautions we do," said Tommy.

He glanced up and down the alley way, then softly tried the door. It
yielded. He pushed it open, and peered into a dim yard.

Noiselessly he passed through, Mr. Ryder on his heels.

"Gee!" said the latter. "There's someone coming down the alley."

He slipped outside again. Tommy stood still for a minute, then hearing
nothing went on. He took a torch from his pocket and switched on the
light for a brief second. That momentary flash enabled him to see his
way ahead. He pushed forward and tried the closed door ahead of him.
That too gave, and very softly he pushed it open and went in.

After standing still a second and listening, he again switched on the
torch, and at that flash, as though at a given signal, the place seemed
to rise round him. Two men were in front of him, two men were behind
him. They closed in on him, and bore him down.

"Lights," growled a voice.

An incandescent gas burner was lit. By its light Tommy saw a circle of
unpleasing faces. His eyes wandered gently round the room and noted
some of the objects in it.

"Ah!" he said pleasantly. "The headquarters of the counterfeiting
industry, if I am not mistaken."

"Shut your jaw," growled one of the men.

The door opened and shut behind Tommy, and a genial and well known
voice spoke.

"Got him, boys. That's right. Now, Mr. Busy, let me tell you you're up
against it."

"That dear old word," said Tommy. "How it thrills me. Yes. I am the
Mystery Man of Scotland Yard. Why it's Mr. Hank Ryder. This _is_ a
surprise."

"I guess you mean that too. I've been laughing fit to bust all this
evening--leading you here like a little child. And you so pleased
with your cleverness. Why, sonny, I was on to you from the start. You
weren't in with that crowd for your health. I let you play about for
a while, and when you got real suspicious of the lovely Marguerite, I
said to myself 'Now's the time to lead him to it.' I guess your friends
won't be hearing of you for some time."

"Going to do me in? That's the correct expression, I believe. You have
got it in for me."

"You've got a nerve all right. No, we shan't attempt violence. Just
keep you under restraint, so to speak."

"I'm afraid you're backing the wrong horse," said Tommy. "I've no
intention of being 'kept under restraint' as you call it."

Mr. Ryder smiled genially. From outside a cat uttered a melancholy cry
to the moon.

"Banking on that cross you put on the door, eh Sonny?" said Mr. Ryder.
"I shouldn't if I were you. Because I know that story you mentioned.
Heard it when I was a little boy. I stepped back into the alleyway to
enact the part of the dog with eyes as big as cart wheels. If you were
in that alley now, you would observe that every door in the alley is
marked with an identical cross."

Tommy drooped his head despondently.

"Thought you were mighty clever, didn't you?" said Ryder.

As the words left his lips a sharp rapping sounded on the door.

"What's that?" he cried, starting.

At the same time, an assault began on the front of the house. The door
at the back was a flimsy affair. The lock gave almost immediately and
Inspector Marriot showed in the doorway.

"Well done, Marriot," said Tommy. "You were quite right as to the
district. I'd like you to make the acquaintance of Mr. Hank Ryder who
knows all the best fairy tales."

"You see, Mr. Ryder," he added gently, "I've had my suspicions of you.
Albert (that important looking boy with the big ears is Albert) had
orders to follow on his motor cycle if you and I went off joy riding
at any time. And whilst I was ostentatiously marking a chalk cross on
the door to engage your attention, I also emptied a little bottle of
valerian on the ground. Nasty smell, but cats love it. All the cats in
the neighborhood were assembled outside to mark the right house when
Albert and the police arrived."

He looked at the dumbfounded Mr. Ryder with a smile. Then rose to his
feet.

"I said I would get you, Crackler, and I have got you," he observed.

"What the Hell are you talking about?" asked Mr. Ryder. "What do you
mean--Crackler?"

"You will find it in the glossary of the next criminal dictionary,"
said Tommy. "Etymology doubtful."

He looked round him with a happy smile.

"And all done without a Nose," he murmured brightly. "Good night,
Marriot. I must go now to where the happy ending of the story awaits
me. No reward like the love of a good woman--and the love of a good
woman awaits me at home--that is I hope it does, but one never knows
nowadays. This has been a very dangerous job, Marriot. Do you know
Captain Jimmy Faulkener? His dancing is simply too marvellous and
as for his taste in cocktails--! Yes, Marriot, it has been a very
dangerous job."




                              CHAPTER XV

                        THE SUNNINGDALE MYSTERY


"Do you know where we are going to lunch to-day, Tuppence?"

Mrs. Beresford considered the question.

"The Ritz?" she suggested hopefully.

"Think again."

"That nice little place in Soho?"

"No." Tommy's tone was full of importance. "An A.B.C. shop. This one in
fact."

He drew her deftly inside an establishment of the kind indicated, and
steered her to a corner marble-topped table.

"Excellent," said Tommy with satisfaction, as he seated himself.
"Couldn't be better."

"Why has this craze for the simple life come upon you?" demanded
Tuppence.

"_You see, Watson, but you do not observe._ I wonder now whether one
of these haughty damsels would condescend to notice us? Splendid,
she drifts this way. It is true that she appears to be thinking of
something else, but doubtless her subconscious mind is functioning
busily with such matters as ham and eggs and pots of tea. Chop and
fried potatoes, please, Miss, and a large coffee, a roll and butter,
and a plate of tongue for the lady."

The waitress repeated the order in a scornful tone, but Tuppence leant
forward suddenly and interrupted her.

"No, not a chop and fried potatoes. This gentleman will have a cheese
cake and a glass of milk."

"A cheese cake and a milk," said the waitress with even deeper scorn if
that were possible. Still thinking of something else, she drifted away
again.

"That was uncalled for," said Tommy coldly.

"But I'm right, aren't I? You are the Old Man in the Corner? Where's
your piece of string?"

Tommy drew a long twisted mesh of string from his pocket, and proceeded
to tie a couple of knots in it.

"Complete to the smallest detail," he murmured.

"You made a small mistake in ordering your meal, though."

"Women are so literal minded," said Tommy. "If there's one thing I hate
it's milk to drink, and cheese cakes are always so yellow and bilious
looking."

"Be an artist," said Tuppence. "Watch me attack my cold tongue. Jolly
good stuff, cold tongue. Now then, I'm all ready to be Miss Polly
Burton. Tie a large knot and begin."

"First of all," said Tommy, "speaking in a strictly unofficial
capacity, let me point out this. Business is not too brisk lately. If
business does not come to us, we must go to business. Apply our minds
to one of the great public mysteries of the moment. Which brings me to
the point--the Sunningdale Mystery."

"Ah!" said Tuppence, with deep interest. "The Sunningdale Mystery!"

Tommy drew a crumpled piece of newspaper from his pocket and laid it on
the table.

"That is the latest portrait of Captain Sessle as it appeared in the
Daily Leader."

"Just so," said Tuppence. "I wonder someone doesn't sue these
newspapers sometimes. You can see it's a man and that's all."

"When I said the Sunningdale Mystery, I should have said the so-called
Sunningdale Mystery," went on Tommy rapidly. "A mystery to the police
perhaps, but not to an intelligent mind."

"Tie another knot," said Tuppence.

"I don't know how much of the case you remember," continued Tommy
quietly.

"All of it," said Tuppence, "but don't let me cramp your style."

"It was just over three weeks ago," said Tommy, "that that gruesome
discovery was made on the famous golf links. Two members of the Club
who were enjoying an early round were horrified to find the body of a
man lying face downwards on the seventh tee. Even before they turned
him over they had guessed him to be Captain Sessle, a well known figure
on the links, and who always wore a golf coat of a peculiarly bright
blue color.

"Captain Sessle was often seen out on the links early in the morning,
practising, and it was thought at first that he had been suddenly
overcome by some form of heart disease. But examination by a doctor
revealed the sinister fact that he had been murdered, stabbed to the
heart with a significant object, _a woman's hat pin_. He was also found
to have been dead at least twelve hours.

"That put an entirely different complexion on the matter, and very soon
some interesting facts came to light. Practically the last person to
see Captain Sessle alive was his friend and partner Mr. Hollaby of the
Porcupine Assurance Co., and he told his story as follows.

"Sessle and he played a round earlier in the day. After tea the other
suggested that they should play a few more holes before it got too dark
to see. Hollaby assented. Sessle seemed in good spirits, and was in
excellent form. There is a public footpath that crosses the links, and
just as they were playing up to the sixth green Hollaby noticed a woman
coming along it. She was very tall and dressed in brown, but he did not
observe her particularly and Sessle he thought did not notice her at
all.

"The footpath in question crosses in front of the seventh tee,"
continued Tommy. "The woman had passed along this, and was standing at
the farther side, as though waiting. Captain Sessle was the first to
reach the tee, as Mr. Hollaby was replacing the pin in the hole. As the
latter came towards the tee, he was astonished to see Sessle and the
woman talking together. As he came nearer, they both turned abruptly,
Sessle calling over his shoulder: 'Shan't be a minute.'

"The two of them walked off side by side, still deep in earnest
conversation. The footpath there leaves the course, and passing between
two narrow hedges of neighboring gardens comes out on the road to
Windlesham.

"Captain Sessle was as good as his word. He reappeared within a
minute or two, much to Hollaby's satisfaction, as two other players
were coming up behind them, and the light was failing rapidly. They
drove off, and at once Hollaby noticed that something had occurred to
upset his companion. Not only did he foozle his drive badly, but his
face was worried, and his forehead creased in a big frown. He hardly
answered his companion's remarks, and his golf was atrocious. Evidently
something had occurred to put him completely off his game.

"They played that hole and the eighth, and then Captain Sessle declared
abruptly that the light was too bad and that he was off home. Just at
that point there is another of those narrow 'slips' leading to the
Windlesham road, and Captain Sessle departed that way which was a short
cut to his home, a small bungalow on the road in question. The other
two players came up, a Major Barnard and Mr. Lecky, and to them Hollaby
mentioned Captain Sessle's sudden change of manner. They also had seen
him speaking to the woman in brown, but had not been near enough to
see her face. All three men wondered what she could have said to upset
their friend to that extent.

"They returned to the Club House together, and as far as was known at
the time, were the last people to see Captain Sessle alive. The day
was a Wednesday and on Wednesdays cheap tickets to London are issued.
The man and wife who ran Captain Sessle's small bungalow were up in
town according to custom, and did not return until the late train. They
entered the Bungalow as usual, and supposed their master to be in his
room asleep. Mrs. Sessle, his wife, was away on a visit.

"The murder of the Captain was a nine days' wonder. Nobody could
suggest a motive for it. The identity of the tall woman in brown was
eagerly discussed, but without result. The police were, as usual,
blamed for their supineness--most unjustly as time was to show. For a
week later, a girl called Doris Evans was arrested and charged with the
murder of Captain Anthony Sessle.

"The police had had little to work upon. A strand of fair hair caught
in the dead man's fingers, and a few threads of flame colored wool
caught on one of the buttons of his blue coat. Diligent inquiries at
the Railway Station and elsewhere had elicited the following facts.

"A young girl dressed in a flame colored coat and skirt had arrived
by train that evening about seven o'clock, and had asked the way to
Captain Sessle's house. The same girl had reappeared again at the
station, two hours later. Her hat was awry and her hair tousled, and
she seemed in a state of great agitation. She inquired about the trains
back to town, and was continually looking over her shoulder as though
afraid of something.

"Our police force is in many ways very wonderful. With this slender
evidence to go upon, they managed to track down the girl, and identify
her as one Doris Evans. She was charged with murder, and cautioned that
anything she might say would be used against her, but she nevertheless
persisted in making a statement, and this statement she repeated
again in detail, without any substantial variation, at the subsequent
proceedings.

"Her story was this. She was a typist by profession, and had made
friends one evening, in a Cinema, with a well dressed man who declared
he had taken a fancy to her. His name, he told her, was Anthony, and
he suggested that she should come down to his bungalow at Sunningdale.
She had no idea then, or at any other time, that he had a wife. It
was arranged between them that she should come down on the following
Wednesday--the day, you will remember, when the servants would be
absent and his wife away from home. In the end he told her his full
name was Anthony Sessle, and gave her the name of his house.

"She duly arrived at the Bungalow on the evening in question, and
was greeted by Sessle who had just come in from the links. Though he
professed himself delighted to see her, the girl declared that from the
first his manner was strange and different. A half acknowledged fear
sprang up in her, and she wished fervently that she had not come.

"After a simple meal which was all ready and prepared, Sessle suggested
going out for a stroll. The girl consenting, he took her out of the
house, down the road, and along the 'slip' onto the golf course. And
then suddenly, just as they were crossing the seventh tee, he seemed to
go completely mad. Drawing a revolver from his pocket, he brandished it
in the air, declaring that he had come to the end of his tether.

"'Everything must go! I'm ruined--done for. And you shall go with me. I
shall shoot you first--then myself. They will find our bodies here in
the morning side by side--together in death.'

"And so on--a lot more. He had hold of Doris Evans by the arm and
she, realising she had to do with a madman, made frantic efforts to
free herself, or failing that to get the revolver away from him. They
struggled together, and in that struggle he must have torn out a piece
of her hair and got the wool of her coat entangled on a button.

"Finally, with a desperate effort, she freed herself, and ran for her
life across the golf links, expecting every minute to be shot down
with a revolver bullet. She fell twice--tripping over the heather, but
eventually regained the road to the station and realised that she was
not being pursued.

"That is the story that Doris Evans tells--and from which she has
never varied. She strenuously denies that she ever struck at him with
a hat pin in self defence--a natural enough thing to do under the
circumstances, though--and one which may well be the truth. In support
of her story a revolver has been found in the furze bushes near where
the body is lying. It had not been fired.

"Doris Evans has been sent for trial, but the mystery still remains a
mystery. If her story is to be believed, who was it who stabbed Captain
Sessle? The other woman, the tall woman in brown whose appearance so
upset him? So far no one has explained her connection with the case.
She appears out of space suddenly on the footpath across the links, she
disappears along the slip, and no one ever hears of her again. Who was
she? A local resident? A visitor from London? If so, did she come by
car or train? There is nothing remarkable about her except her height,
no one seems to be able to describe her appearance. She could not have
been Doris Evans for Doris Evans is small and fair, and moreover was
only just then arriving at the station."

"The wife?" suggested Tuppence. "What about the wife?"

"A very natural suggestion. But Mrs. Sessle is also a small woman, and
besides Mr. Hollaby knows her well by sight, and there seems no doubt
that she was really away from home. One further development has come
to light. The Porcupine Assurance Co. is in liquidation. The accounts
reveal the most daring misappropriation of funds. The reasons for
Captain Sessle's wild words to Doris Evans are now quite apparent. For
some years past, he must have been systematically embezzling money.
Neither Mr. Hollaby, nor his son, had any idea of what was going on.
They are practically ruined.

"The case stands like this. Captain Sessle was on the verge of
discovery and ruin. Suicide would be a natural solution, but the nature
of the wound rules that theory out. Who killed him? Was it Doris Evans?
Was it the mysterious woman in brown?"

Tommy paused, took a sip of milk, made a wry face, and bit cautiously
at the cheese cake.




                              CHAPTER XVI

                  THE SUNNINGDALE MYSTERY (continued)


"Of _course_," murmured Tommy, "I saw at once where the hitch in this
particular case lay, and just where the police were going astray."

"Yes?" said Tuppence eagerly.

Tommy shook his head sadly.

"I wish I did. Tuppence, it's dead easy being the Old Man in the Corner
up to a certain point. But the solution beats me. Who did murder the
beggar? I don't know."

He took some more newspaper cuttings out of his pocket.

"Further exhibits. Mr. Hollaby. His son. Mrs. Sessle. Doris Evans."

Tuppence pounced on the last, and looked at it for some time.

"She didn't murder him anyway," she remarked at last. "Not with a hat
pin."

"Why this certainty?"

"A Lady Molly touch. She's got bobbed hair. Only one woman in twenty
uses hat pins nowadays, anyway--long hair or short. Hats fit tight and
pull on--there's no need for such a thing."

"Still, she might have had one by her."

"My dear boy, we don't keep them as heirlooms! What on earth should she
have brought a hat pin down to Sunningdale for?"

"Then it must have been the other woman, the woman in brown."

"I wish she hadn't been tall. Then she could have been the wife. I
always suspect wives who are away at the time and so couldn't have had
anything to do with it. If she found her husband carrying on with that
girl, it would be quite natural for her to go for him with a hat pin."

"I shall have to be careful, I see," remarked Tommy.

But Tuppence was deep in thought and refused to be drawn.

"What were the Sessles like?" she asked suddenly. "What sort of thing
did people say about them?"

"As far as I can make out, they were very popular. He and his wife were
supposed to be devoted to one another. That's what makes the business
of the girl so odd. It's the last thing you'd have expected of a man
like Sessle. He was an ex-soldier, you know. Came into a good bit of
money, retired and went into this Insurance business. The last man in
the world, apparently, whom you would have suspected of being a crook."

"Is it absolutely certain that he was the crook? Couldn't it have been
the other two who took the money?"

"The Hollabys? They say they're ruined."

"Oh, they say! Perhaps they've got it all in a Bank under another name.
I put it foolishly, I daresay, but you know what I mean. Suppose they'd
been speculating with the money for some time, unbeknownst to Sessle,
and lost it all. It might be jolly convenient for them that Sessle died
just when he did."

Tommy tapped the photograph of Mr. Hollaby senior with his finger nail.

"So you're accusing this respectable gentleman of murdering his friend
and partner? You forget that he parted from Sessle on the links in full
view of Barnard and Lecky, and spent the evening in the Dormy House.
Besides, there's the hat pin."

"Bother the hat pin," said Tuppence impatiently. "That hat pin, you
think, points to the crime having been committed by a woman?"

"Naturally. Don't you agree?"

"No. Men are notoriously old fashioned. It takes them ages to rid
themselves of preconceived ideas. They associate hat pins and hairpins
with the female sex, and call them 'women's weapons.' They may have
been in the past, but they're both rather out of date now. Why, I
haven't had a hat pin or hairpin for the last four years."

"Then you think--?"

"That it was a _man_ killed Sessle. The hat pin was used to make it
seem a woman's crime."

"There's something in what you say, Tuppence," said Tommy slowly. "It's
extraordinary how things seem to straighten themselves out when you
talk a thing over."

Tuppence nodded.

"Everything must be logical--if you look at it the right way. And
remember what Marriot once said about the Amateur point of view--that
it had the _intimacy_. We know something about people like Captain
Sessle and his wife. We know what they're likely to do--and what
they're not likely to do. And we've each got our special knowledge."

Tommy smiled.

"You mean," he said, "that you are an authority on what people with
bobbed and shingled heads are likely to have in their possession, and
that you have an intimate acquaintance with what wives are likely to
feel and do?"

"Something of the sort."

"And what about me? What is my special knowledge? Do husbands pick up
girls etc.?"

"No," said Tuppence gravely. "You know the course--you've been on
it--not as a detective, searching for clues, but as a golfer. You know
about golf, and what's likely to put a man off his game."

"It must have been something pretty serious to put Sessle off his game.
His handicap's two, and from the seventh tee on he played like a child,
so they say."

"Who say?"

"Barnard and Lecky. They were playing just behind him, you remember."

"That was after he met the woman--the tall woman in brown. They saw him
speaking to her, didn't they?"

"Yes--at least--"

Tommy broke off. Tuppence looked up at him, and was puzzled. He was
staring at the piece of string in his fingers, but staring with the
eyes of one who sees something very different.

"Tommy--what is it?"

"Be quiet, Tuppence. I'm playing the sixth hole at Sunningdale. Sessle
and old Hollaby are holing out on the sixth green ahead of me. It's
getting dusk, but I can see that bright blue coat of Sessle's clearly
enough. And on the footpath to the left of me there's a woman coming
along. She hasn't crossed from the Ladies' Course--that's on the
right--I should have seen her if she had done so. And it's odd I didn't
see her on the footpath before--from the fifth tee, for instance."

He paused.

"You said just now I knew the course, Tuppence. Just behind the sixth
tee, there's a little hut or shelter made of turf. Anyone could wait in
there until--the right moment came. They could change their appearance
there. I mean--tell me, Tuppence this is where your special knowledge
comes in again--would it be very difficult for a man to look like a
woman, and then change back to being a man again? Could he wear a skirt
over plus fours, for instance?"

"Certainly he could. The woman would look a bit bulky, that would be
all. A longish brown skirt, say, a brown sweater of the kind both men
and women wear, and a woman's felt hat with a bunch of side curls
attached each side. That would be all that was needed--I'm speaking,
of course, of what would pass at a distance, which I take to be what
you are driving at. Switch off the skirt, take off the hat and curls,
and put on a man's cap which you can carry rolled up in your hand, and
there you'd be--back as a man again."

"And the time required for the transformation?"

"From woman to man, a minute and a half at the outside, probably a good
deal less. The other way about would take longer, you'd have to arrange
the hat and curls a bit, and the skirt would stick getting it on over
the plus fours."

"That doesn't worry me. It's the time for the first that matters. As I
tell you, I'm playing the sixth hole. The woman in brown has reached
the seventh tee now. She crosses it and waits. Sessle in his blue coat
goes towards her. They stand together a minute, and then they follow
the path round the trees out of sight. Hollaby is on the tee alone. Two
or three minutes pass. I'm on the green now. The man in the blue coat
comes back and drives off, foozling badly. The light's getting worse.
I and my partner go on. Ahead of us are those two, Sessle slicing and
topping and doing everything he shouldn't do. At the eighth green, I
see him stride off and vanish down the slip. What happened to him to
make him play like a different man?"

"The woman in brown--or the man, if you think it was a man."

"Exactly, and where they were standing--out of sight, remember, of
those coming after them--there's a deep tangle of furze bushes. You
could thrust a body in there, and it would be pretty certain to lie
hidden until the morning."

"Tommy! You think it was _then_--But someone would have heard--"

"Heard what? The doctors agreed death must have been instantaneous.
I've seen men killed instantaneously in the War. They don't cry out
as a rule--just a gurgle, or a moan--perhaps just a sigh, or a funny
little cough. Sessle comes towards the seventh tee, and the woman comes
forward and speaks to him. He recognizes her perhaps, as a man he knows
masquerading. Curious to learn the why and wherefore, he allows himself
to be drawn along the footpath out of sight. One stab with the deadly
hat pin as they walk along. Sessle falls--dead. The other man drags his
body into the furze bushes, strips off the blue coat, then sheds his
own skirt and the hat and curls. He puts on Sessle's well known blue
coat and cap, and strides back to the tee. Three minutes would do it.
The others behind can't see his face, only the peculiar blue coat they
know so well. They never doubt that it's Sessle--_but he doesn't play
Sessle's brand of golf_. They all say he played like a different man.
Of course he did. He _was_ a different man."

"But--"

"Point No. 2. His action in bringing the girl down there was the action
of _a different man_. It wasn't Sessle who met Doris Evans at a Cinema,
and induced her to come down to Sunningdale. It was a man _calling_
himself Sessle. Remember, Doris Evans wasn't arrested until a fortnight
after the crime. _She never saw the body._ If she had, she might have
bewildered everyone by declaring that that wasn't the man who took her
out on the golf links that night, and spoke so wildly of suicide. It
was a carefully laid plot. The girl invited down for Wednesday when
Sessle's house would be empty, then the hat pin which pointed to its
being a woman's doing. The murderer meets the girl, takes her into the
Bungalow and gives her supper, then takes her out on the links and
when he gets to the scene of the crime, brandishes his revolver and
scares the life out of her. Once she has taken to her heels, all he
has to do is to pull out the body and leave it lying on the tee. The
revolver he chucks into the bushes. Then he makes a neat parcel of the
skirt and hat and--now I admit I'm guessing--in all probability walks
to Woking which is only about six or seven miles away, and goes back to
town from there."

"Wait a minute," said Tuppence. "There's one thing you haven't
explained. What about Hollaby?"

"Hollaby?"

"Yes. I admit that the people behind couldn't have seen whether it
was really Sessle or not. But you can't tell me that the man who was
playing with him was so hypnotised by the blue coat that he never
looked at his face."

"My dear old thing," said Tommy. "That's just the point. Hollaby knew
all right. You see, I'm adopting your theory--that Hollaby and his
son were the real embezzlers. The murderer's got to be a man who knew
Sessle pretty well--knew, for instance, about the servants being always
out on a Wednesday, and that his wife was away. And also someone who
was able to get an impression of Sessle's latch key. I think Hollaby
Junior would fulfill all these requirements. He's about the same age
and height as Sessle, and they were both clean shaven men. Doris Evans
probably saw several photographs of the murdered man reproduced in the
papers, but as you yourself observed--one can just see that it's a man
and that's about all."

"Didn't she ever see Hollaby in Court?"

"The son never appeared in the case at all. Why should he? He had no
evidence to give. It was old Hollaby, with his irreproachable alibi,
who stood in the limelight throughout. Nobody has even bothered to
inquire what son was doing that particular evening."

"It all fits in," admitted Tuppence. She paused a minute, and then
asked: "Are you going to tell all this to the police?"

"I don't know if they'd listen."

"They'll listen all right," said an unexpected voice behind him.

Tommy swung round to confront Inspector Marriot. The Inspector was
sitting at the next table. In front of him was a poached egg.

"Often drop in here to lunch," said Inspector Marriot. "As I was
saying, we'll listen all right--in fact I've been listening. I don't
mind telling you that we've not been quite satisfied all along over
those Porcupine figures. You see, we've had our suspicions of those
Hollabys. But nothing to go upon. Too sharp for us. Then this murder
came, and that seemed to upset all our ideas. But thanks to you and
the lady, sir, we'll confront young Hollaby and Doris Evans and see if
she recognizes him. I rather fancy she will. That's a very ingenious
idea of yours about the blue coat. I'll see that Blunt's Brilliant
Detectives get the credit for it."

"You _are_ a nice man, Inspector Marriot," said Tuppence gratefully.

"We think a lot of you two at the Yard," replied that stolid gentleman.
"You'd be surprised. If I may ask you, sir, what's the meaning of that
piece of string?"

"Nothing," said Tommy, stuffing it into his pocket. "A bad habit of
mine. As to the cheese cake and the milk--I'm on a diet. Nervous
dyspepsia. Busy men are always martyrs to it."

"Ah!" said the detective. "I thought perhaps you'd been reading--well,
it's of no consequence."

But the Inspector's eyes twinkled.




                             CHAPTER XVII

                      THE HOUSE OF LURKING DEATH


"What--" began Tuppence, and then stopped.

She had just entered the private office of Mr. Blunt from the adjoining
one marked "Clerks," and was surprised to behold her lord and master
with his eye riveted to the private peep hole into the outer office.

"Ssh," said Tommy, warningly. "Didn't you hear the buzzer? It's a
girl--rather a nice girl--in fact she looks to me a frightfully nice
girl. Albert is telling her all that tosh about my being engaged with
Scotland Yard."

"Let _me_ see," demanded Tuppence.

Somewhat unwillingly, Tommy moved aside. Tuppence in her turn glued her
eye to the peep hole.

"She's not bad," admitted Tuppence. "And her clothes are simply the
latest shout."

"She's perfectly lovely," said Tommy. "She's like those girls Mason
writes about--you know, frightfully sympathetic, and beautiful, and
distinctly intelligent without being too saucy. I think, yes--I
certainly think--I shall be the great Hanaud this morning."

"Hm," said Tuppence. "If there is one detective out of all the others
whom you are most unlike--I should say it was Hanaud. Can you do the
lightning changes of personality? Can you be the great comedian, the
little gutter boy, the serious and sympathetic friend--all in five
minutes?"

"I know this," said Tommy, rapping sharply on the desk, "I am the
Captain of the Ship--and don't you forget it, Tuppence. I'm going to
have her in."

He pressed the buzzer on his desk. Albert appeared ushering in the
client.

The girl stopped in the doorway as though undecided. Tommy came forward.

"Come in, Mademoiselle," he said kindly, "and seat yourself here."

Tuppence choked audibly, and Tommy turned upon her with a swift change
of manner. His tone was menacing.

"You spoke, Miss Robinson? Ah! no, I thought not."

He turned back to the girl.

"We will not be serious or formal," he said. "You will just tell me all
about it, and then we will discuss the best way to help you."

"You are very kind," said the girl. "Excuse me, but are you a
foreigner?"

A fresh choke from Tuppence. Tommy glared in her direction out of the
corner of his eye.

"Not exactly," he said with difficulty. "But of late years I have
worked a good deal abroad. My methods are the methods of the Sûreté."

"Oh!" The girl seemed impressed.

She was, as Tommy had indicated, a very charming girl. Young and slim,
with a trace of golden hair peeping out from under her little brown
felt hat, and big serious eyes.

That she was nervous could be plainly seen. Her little hands were
twisting themselves together, and she kept clasping and unclasping the
catch of her lacquer red handbag.

"First of all, Mr. Blunt, I must tell you that my name is Lois
Hargreaves. I live in a great rambling old fashioned house called
Thurnly Grange. It is in the heart of the country. There is the village
of Thurnly near by, but it is very small and insignificant. There is
plenty of hunting in winter, and we get tennis in summer, and I have
never felt lonely there. Indeed I much prefer country to town life.

"I tell you this so that you may realise that in a country village like
ours, everything that happens is of supreme importance. About a week
ago, I got a box of chocolates sent through the post. There was nothing
inside to indicate who they came from. Now I myself am not particularly
fond of chocolates, but the others in the house are, and the box was
passed around. As a result, everyone who had eaten any chocolates was
taken ill. We sent for the doctor, and after various inquiries as to
what other things had been eaten, he took the remains of the chocolates
away with him, and had them analysed. Mr. Blunt, those chocolates
contained arsenic! Not enough to kill anyone, but enough to make anyone
quite ill."

"Extraordinary," commented Tommy.

"Dr. Burton was very excited over the matter. It seems that this was
the third occurrence of the kind in the neighborhood. In each case a
big house was selected, and the inmates were taken ill after eating the
mysterious chocolates. It looked as though some local person of weak
intellect was playing a particularly fiendish practical joke."

"Quite so, Miss Hargreaves."

"Dr. Burton put it down to Socialist agitation--rather absurdly, I
thought. But there are one or two malcontents in Thurnly village, and
it seemed possible that they might have had something to do with it.
Dr. Burton was very keen that I should put the whole thing in the hands
of the police."

"A very natural suggestion," said Tommy. "But you have not done so, I
gather, Miss Hargreaves?"

"No," admitted the girl. "I hate the fuss and the publicity that would
ensue--and you see, I know our local Inspector. I can never imagine him
finding out anything! I have often seen your advertisements, and I told
Dr. Burton that it would be much better to call in a private detective."

"I see."

"You say a great deal about discretion in your advertisement. I take
that to mean--that--that--well, that you would not make anything public
without my consent?"

Tommy looked at her curiously, but it was Tuppence who spoke.

"I think," she said quietly, "that it would be as well if Miss
Hargreaves told us _everything_."

She laid especial stress upon the last word, and Lois Hargreaves
flushed nervously.

"Yes," said Tommy quickly. "Miss Robinson is right. You must tell us
everything."

"You will not--" she hesitated.

"Everything you say is understood to be strictly in confidence."

"Thank you. I know that I ought to have been quite frank with you.
I have a reason for not going to the police. Mr. Blunt, that box of
chocolates was sent by someone in our house!"

"How do you know that, Mademoiselle?"

"It's very simple. I've got a habit of drawing a little silly
thing--three fish intertwined--whenever I have a pencil in my hand. A
parcel of silk stockings arrived from a certain shop in London not long
ago. We were at the breakfast table. I'd just been marking something in
the newspaper, and without thinking, I began to draw my silly little
fish on the label of the parcel before cutting the string and opening
it. I thought no more about the matter, but when I was examining the
piece of brown paper in which the chocolates had been sent, I caught
sight of the corner of the original label--most of which had been torn
off. My silly little drawing was on it."

Tommy drew his chair forward.

"That is very serious. It creates, as you say, a very strong
presumption that the sender of the chocolates is a member of your
household. But you will forgive me if I say that I still do not see why
that fact should render you indisposed to call in the police?"

Lois Hargreaves looked him squarely in the face.

"I will tell you, Mr. Blunt. I may want the whole thing hushed up."

Tommy retired gracefully from the position.

"In that case," he murmured, "we know where we are. I see, Miss
Hargreaves, that you are not disposed to tell me who it is you suspect?"

"I suspect no one--but there are possibilities."

"Quite so. Now will you describe the household to me in detail?"

"The servants, with the exception of the parlormaid, are all old ones
who have been with us many years. I must explain to you, Mr. Blunt,
that I was brought up by my Aunt, Lady Radclyffe, who was extremely
wealthy. Her husband made a big fortune, and was knighted. It was he
who bought Thurnly Grange, but he died two years after going there,
and it was then that Lady Radclyffe sent for me to come and make my
home with her. I was her only living relation. The other inmate of the
house was Dennis Radclyffe, her husband's nephew. I have always called
him cousin, but of course he is really nothing of the kind. Aunt Lucy
always said openly that she intended to leave her money, with the
exception of a small provision for me, to Dennis. It was Radclyffe
money, she said, and ought to go to a Radclyffe. However, when Dennis
was twenty-two, she quarrelled violently with him--over some debts that
he had run up, I think. When she died, a year later, I was astonished
to find that she had made a will leaving all her money to me. It was, I
know, a great blow to Dennis, and I felt very badly about it. I would
have given him the money if he would have taken it, but it seems that
that kind of thing can't be done. However, as soon as I was twenty-one,
I made a will leaving it all to him. That's the least I can do. So if
I'm run over by a motor, Dennis will come into his own."

"Exactly," said Tommy. "And when were you twenty-one, if I may ask the
question?"

"Just three weeks ago."

"Ah!" said Tommy. "Now will you give me fuller particulars of the
members of your household at this minute?"

"Servants--or--others?"

"Both."

"The servants, as I say, have been with us some time. There is old Mrs.
Holloway, the cook, and her niece Rose, the kitchenmaid. Then there are
two elderly housemaids, and Hannah who was my aunt's maid and who has
always been devoted to me. The parlormaid is called Esther Quant, and
seems a very nice quiet girl. As for ourselves, there is Miss Logan who
was Aunt Lucy's companion and who runs the house for me, and Captain
Radclyffe--Dennis, you know, whom I told you about, and there is a girl
called Mary Chilcott, an old school friend of mine who is staying with
us."

Tommy thought for a moment.

"That all seems fairly clear and straightforward, Miss Hargreaves," he
said after a minute or two. "I take it that you have no special reason
for attaching suspicion more to one person than another? You are only
afraid it might prove to be--well--not a servant, shall we say?"

"That's it exactly, Mr. Blunt. I have honestly no idea who used that
piece of brown paper. The handwriting was printed."

"There seems only one thing to be done," said Tommy. "I must be on the
spot."

The girl looked at him inquiringly.

Tommy went on after a moment's thought.

"I suggest that you prepare the way for the arrival of--say, Mr. and
Miss Van Dusen--American friends of yours. Will you be able to do that
quite naturally?"

"Oh! yes. There will be no difficulty at all. When will you come
down--to-morrow--or the day after?"

"To-morrow, if you please. There is no time to waste."

"That is settled, then."

The girl rose, and held out her hand.

"One thing, Miss Hargreaves, not a word, mind, to anyone--anyone at
all, that we are not what we seem."

"What do you think of it, Tuppence?" he asked, when he returned from
showing the visitor out.

"I don't like it," said Tuppence decidedly. "Especially I don't like
the chocolates having so little arsenic in them."

"What _do_ you mean?"

"Don't you see? All those chocolates being sent round the neighborhood
were a blind. To establish the idea of a local maniac. Then, when the
girl was really poisoned, it would be thought to be the same thing. You
see, but for a stroke of luck, no one would ever have guessed that the
chocolates were actually sent by someone in the house itself."

"That was a stroke of luck. You're right. You think it's a deliberate
plot against the girl herself?"

"I'm afraid so. I remember reading about old Lady Radclyffe's will.
That girl has come into a terrific lot of money."

"Yes, and she came of age and made a will three weeks ago. It looks
bad--for Dennis Radclyffe. He gains by her death."

Tuppence nodded.

"The worst of it is--that she thinks so too! That's why she won't have
the police called in. Already she suspects him. And she must be more
than half in love with him to act as she has done."

"In that case," said Tommy thoughtfully, "why the devil doesn't he
marry her? Much simpler and safer."

Tuppence stared at him.

"You've said a mouthful," she observed. "Oh! boy. I'm getting ready to
be Miss Van Dusen, you observe."

"Why rush to crime, where there is a lawful means near at hand?"

Tuppence reflected for a minute or two.

"I've got it," she announced. "Clearly he must have married a barmaid
whilst at Oxford. Origin of the quarrel with his aunt. That explains
everything."

"Then why not send poisoned sweets to the barmaid?" suggested
Tommy. "Much more practical. I wish you wouldn't jump to these wild
conclusions, Tuppence."

"They're deductions," said Tuppence, with a good deal of dignity. "This
is your first _corrida_, my friend, but when you have been twenty
minutes in the arena--"

Tommy flung the office cushion at her.




                             CHAPTER XVIII

                THE HOUSE OF LURKING DEATH (continued)


"Tuppence, I say, Tuppence, come here."

It was breakfast time the next morning. Tuppence hurried out of her
bedroom and into the dining-room. Tommy was striding up and down, the
open newspaper in his hand.

"What's the matter?"

Tommy wheeled round, and shoved the paper into her hand, pointing to
the headlines.

                       MYSTERIOUS POISONING CASE

                      DEATHS FROM FIG SANDWICHES

Tuppence read on. This mysterious outbreak of ptomaine poisoning had
occurred at Thurnly Grange. The deaths so far reported were those of
Miss Lois Hargreaves, the owner of the house, and the parlormaid,
Esther Quant. A Captain Radclyffe and a Miss Logan were reported to be
still seriously ill. The cause of the outbreak was supposed to be some
fig paste used in sandwiches, since another lady, a Miss Chilcott, who
had not partaken of these, was reported to be quite well.

"We must get down there at once," said Tommy. "That girl! That
perfectly ripping girl! Why the devil didn't I go straight down there
with her yesterday?"

"If you had," said Tuppence, "you'd probably have eaten fig sandwiches
too for tea, and then you'd have been dead. Come on, let's start at
once. I see it says that Dennis Radclyffe is seriously ill also."

"Probably shamming, the dirty blackguard."

They arrived at the small village of Thurnly about midday. An elderly
woman with red eyes opened the door to them when they arrived at
Thurnly Grange.

"Look here," said Tommy quickly before she could speak. "I'm not
a reporter or anything like that. Miss Hargreaves came to see me
yesterday, and asked me to come down here. Is there anyone I can see?"

"Dr. Burton is here now if you'd like to speak to him," said the woman
doubtfully. "Or Miss Chilcott. She's making all the arrangements."

But Tommy had caught at the first suggestion.

"Dr. Burton," he said authoritatively. "I should like to see him at
once if he is here."

The woman showed them into a small morning room. Five minutes later the
door opened, and a tall elderly man with bent shoulders and a kind but
worried face, came in.

"Dr. Burton?" said Tommy. He produced his professional card. "Miss
Hargreaves called on me yesterday with reference to those poisoned
chocolates. I came down to investigate the matter at her request--alas!
too late."

The doctor looked at him keenly.

"You are Mr. Blunt himself?"

"Yes. This is my assistant, Miss Robinson."

The doctor bowed to Tuppence.

"Under the circumstances, there is no need for reticence. But for the
episode of the chocolates, I might have believed these deaths to be
the result of severe ptomaine poisoning--but ptomaine poisoning of an
unusually virulent kind. There is gastro-intestinal inflammation and
haemorrhage. As it is, I am taking the fig paste to be analysed."

"You suspect arsenic poisoning?"

"No. The poison, if a poison has been employed, is something far more
potent and swift in its action. It looks more like some powerful
vegetable toxin."

"I see. I should like to ask you, Dr. Burton, whether you are
thoroughly convinced that Captain Radclyffe is suffering from the same
form of poisoning?"

The doctor looked at him.

"Captain Radclyffe is not suffering from any sort of poisoning now."

"Aha," said Tommy. "I--"

"Captain Radclyffe died at five o'clock this morning."

Tommy was utterly taken aback. The doctor prepared to depart.

"And the other victim, Miss Logan?" asked Tuppence.

"I have every reason to hope that she will recover since she has
survived so far. Being an older woman, the poison seems to have had
less effect on her. I will let you know the result of the analysis,
Mr. Blunt. In the meantime, Miss Chilcott will, I am sure, tell you
anything you want to know."

As he spoke, the door opened, and a girl appeared. She was tall, with a
tanned face, and steady blue eyes.

Dr. Burton performed the necessary introductions.

"I am glad you have come, Mr. Blunt," said Mary Chilcott. "This affair
seems too terrible. Is there anything you want to know that I can tell
you?"

"Where did the fig paste come from?"

"It is a special kind that comes from London. We often have it. No one
suspected that this particular pot differed from any of the others.
Personally I dislike the flavor of figs. That explains my immunity. I
cannot understand how Dennis was affected, since he was out for tea. He
must have picked up a sandwich when he came home, I suppose."

Tommy felt Tuppence's hand press his arm ever so slightly.

"What time did he come in?" he asked.

"I don't really know. I could find out."

"Thank you, Miss Chilcott. It doesn't matter. You have no objection, I
hope, to my questioning the servants?"

"Please do anything you like, Mr. Blunt. I am nearly distraught. Tell
me--you don't think there has been--foul play?"

Her eyes were very anxious as she put the question.

"I don't know what to think. We shall soon know."

"Yes, I suppose Dr. Burton will have the paste analysed."

Quickly excusing herself, she went out by the window to speak to one of
the gardeners.

"You take the housemaids, Tuppence," said Tommy, "and I'll find my way
to the kitchen. I say, Miss Chilcott may feel very distraught, but she
doesn't look it."

Tuppence nodded assent without replying.

Husband and wife met half an hour later.

"Now to pool results," said Tommy. "The sandwiches came out from tea,
and the parlormaid ate one--that's how she got it in the neck. Cook is
positive Dennis Radclyffe hadn't returned when tea was cleared away.
Query--how did _he_ get poisoned?"

"He came in at a quarter to seven," said Tuppence. "Housemaid saw
him from one of the windows. He had a cocktail before dinner--in the
library. She was just clearing away the glass now, and luckily I got it
from her before she washed it. It was after that that he complained of
feeling ill."

"Good," said Tommy. "I'll take that glass along to Burton presently.
Anything else?"

"I'd like you to see Hannah, the maid. She's--she's queer."

"How do you mean--queer?"

"She looks to me as though she were going off her head."

"Let me see her."

Tuppence led the way upstairs. Hannah had a small sitting-room of her
own. The maid sat upright on a high chair. On her knees was an open
Bible. She did not look towards the two strangers as they entered.
Instead she continued to read aloud to herself.

"_Let hot burning coals fall upon them, let them be cast into the fire
and into the pit, that they never rise up again._"

"May I speak to you a minute?" asked Tommy.

Hannah made an impatient gesture with her hand.

"This is no time. The time is running short, I say. _I will follow upon
mine enemies and overtake them, neither will I turn again till I have
destroyed them._ So it is written. The word of the Lord has come to me.
I am the scourge of the Lord."

"Mad as a hatter," murmured Tommy.

"She's been going on like that all the time," whispered Tuppence.

Tommy picked up a book that was lying open, face downwards on the
table. He glanced at the title and slipped it into his pocket.

Suddenly the old woman rose and turned towards them menacingly.

"Go out from here. The time is at hand! I am the flail of the Lord.
The wind bloweth where it listeth--so do I destroy. The ungodly shall
perish. This is a house of evil--of evil, I tell you! Beware of the
wrath of the Lord whose handmaiden I am."

She advanced upon them fiercely. Tommy thought it best to humor her and
withdrew. As he closed the door, he saw her pick up the Bible again.

"I wonder if she's always been like that," he muttered.

He drew from his pocket the book he had picked up off the table.

"Look at that. Funny reading for an ignorant maid."

Tuppence took the book.

"Materia Medica," she murmured. She looked at the fly leaf. "Edward
Logan. It's an old book. Tommy, I wonder if we could see Miss Logan?
Dr. Burton said she was better."

"Shall we ask Miss Chilcott?"

"No. Let's get hold of a housemaid, and send her in to ask."

After a brief delay, they were informed that Miss Logan would see them.
They were taken into a big bedroom facing over the lawn. In the bed was
an old lady with white hair, her delicate old face drawn by suffering.

"I have been very ill," she said faintly. "And I can't talk much, but
Ellen tells me you are detectives. Lois went to consult you then? She
spoke of doing so."

"Yes, Miss Logan," said Tommy. "We don't want to tire you, but perhaps
you can answer a few questions. The maid, Hannah, is she quite right in
her head?"

Miss Logan looked at them with obvious surprise.

"Oh! yes. She is very religious--but there is nothing wrong with her."

Tommy held out the book he had taken from the table.

"Is this yours, Miss Logan?"

"Yes. It was one of my father's books. He was a great doctor, one of
the pioneers of serum therapeutics."

The old lady's voice rang with pride.

"Quite so," said Tommy. "I thought I knew his name," he added
mendaciously. "This book now, did you lend it to Hannah?"

"To Hannah?" Miss Logan raised herself in bed with indignation. "No,
indeed. She wouldn't understand the first word of it. It is a highly
technical book."

"Yes. I see that. Yet I found it in Hannah's room."

"Disgraceful," said Miss Logan. "I will not have the servants touching
my things."

"Where ought it to be?"

"In the bookshelf in my sitting-room--or--stay, I lent it to Mary.
The dear girl is very interested in herbs. She has made one or two
experiments in my little kitchen. I have a little place of my own, you
know, where I brew liqueurs and make preserves in the old fashioned
way. Dear Lucy, Lady Radclyffe, you know, used to swear by my tansy
tea--a wonderful thing for a cold in the head. Poor Lucy, she was
subject to colds. So is Dennis. Dear boy, his father was my first
cousin."

Tommy interrupted these reminiscences.

"This kitchen of yours? Does anyone else use it except you and Miss
Chilcott?"

"Hannah clears up there. And she boils the kettle there for our early
morning tea."

"Thank you, Miss Logan," said Tommy. "There is nothing more I want to
ask you at present. I hope we haven't tired you too much."

He left the room and went down the stairs, frowning to himself.

"There is something here, my dear Mr. Ricardo, that I do not
understand."

"I hate this house," said Tuppence with a shiver. "Let's go for a good
long walk and try to think things out."

Tommy complied and they set out. First they left the cocktail glass at
the doctor's house and then set off for a good tramp across country
discussing the case as they did so.

"It makes it easier somehow if one plays the fool," said Tommy. "All
this Hanaud business. I suppose some people would think I didn't care.
But I do, most awfully. I feel that somehow or other we ought to have
prevented this."

"I think that's foolish of you," said Tuppence. "It is not as though
we had advised Lois Hargreaves not to go to Scotland Yard or anything
like that. Nothing would have induced her to bring the police into the
matter. If she hadn't come to us, she would have done nothing at all."

"And the result would have been the same. Yes, you are right, Tuppence.
It's morbid to reproach oneself over something one couldn't help. What
I would like to do is to make good now."

"And that's not going to be easy."

"No, it isn't. There are so many possibilities, and yet all of them
seem wild and improbable. Supposing Dennis Radclyffe put the poison in
the sandwiches. He knew he would be out to tea. That seems fairly plain
sailing."

"Yes," said Tuppence, "that's all right so far. Then we can put against
that the fact that he was poisoned himself--so that seems to rule him
out. There is one person we mustn't forget--and that is Hannah."

"Hannah?"

"People do all sorts of queer things when they have religious mania."

"She is pretty far gone with it too," said Tommy. "You ought to drop a
word to Dr. Burton about it."

"It must have come on very rapidly," said Tuppence. "That is if we go
by what Miss Logan said."

"I believe religious mania does," said Tommy. "I mean, you go on
singing hymns in your bedroom with the door open for years, and then
you go suddenly right over the line and become violent."

"There is certainly more evidence against Hannah than against anybody
else," said Tuppence thoughtfully, "and yet I have an idea--" She
stopped.

"Yes?" said Tommy encouragingly.

"It is not really an idea. I suppose it is just a prejudice."

"A prejudice against someone?"

Tuppence nodded.

"Tommy--did _you_ like Mary Chilcott?"

Tommy considered.

"Yes, I think I did. She struck me as extremely capable and
businesslike--perhaps a shade too much so--but very reliable."

"You didn't think it was odd that she didn't seem more upset?"

"Well, in a way that is a point in her favor. I mean, if she had done
anything, she would make a point of being upset--lay it on rather
thick."

"I suppose so," said Tuppence. "And anyway there doesn't seem to
be any motive in her case. One doesn't see what good this wholesale
slaughter can do her."

"I suppose none of the servants are concerned?"

"It doesn't seem likely. They seem a quiet reliable lot. I wonder what
Esther Quant, the parlormaid, was like."

"You mean, that if she was young and good-looking there was a chance
that she was mixed up in it some way."

"That is what I mean." Tuppence sighed. "It is all very discouraging."

"Well, I suppose the police will get down to it all right," said Tommy.

"Probably. I should like it to be us. By the way, did you notice a lot
of small red dots on Miss Logan's arm?"

"I don't think I did. What about them?"

"They looked as though they were made by a hypodermic syringe," said
Tuppence.

"Probably Dr. Burton gave her a hypodermic injection of some kind."

"Oh, very likely. But he wouldn't give her about forty."

"The cocaine habit," suggested Tommy helpfully.

"I thought of that," said Tuppence, "but her eyes were all right. You
would see at once if it was cocaine or morphia. Besides she doesn't
look that sort of old lady."

"Most respectable and God fearing," agreed Tommy.

"It is all very difficult," said Tuppence. "We have talked and talked
and we don't seem any nearer now than we were. Don't let's forget to
call at the doctor's on our way home."

The doctor's door was opened by a lanky boy of about fifteen.

"Mr. Blunt?" he inquired. "Yes, the doctor is out but he left a note
for you in case you should call."

He handed them the note in question and Tommy tore it open.

    "_Dear Mr. Blunt_,

    "_There is reason to believe that the poison employed was Ricin, a
    vegetable toxalbumose of tremendous potency. Please keep this to
    yourself for the present._"

Tommy let the note drop, but picked it up quickly.

"Ricin," he murmured. "Know anything about it, Tuppence? You used to be
rather well up in these things."

"Ricin," said Tuppence, thoughtfully. "You get it out of Castor Oil, I
believe."

"I never did take kindly to Castor Oil," said Tommy. "I am more set
against it than ever now."

"The oil's all right. You get Ricin from the seeds of the Castor Oil
plant. I believe I saw some Castor Oil plants in the garden this
morning--big things with glossy leaves."

"You mean that someone extracted the stuff on the premises. Could
Hannah do such a thing?"

Tuppence shook her head.

"Doesn't seem likely. She wouldn't know enough."

Suddenly Tommy gave an exclamation.

"That book. Have I got it in my pocket still? Yes." He took it out, and
turned over the leaves vehemently. "I thought so. Here's the page it
was open at this morning. Do you see, Tuppence? Ricin!"

Tuppence seized the book from him.

"Can you make head or tail of it? I can't."

"It's clear enough to me," said Tuppence. She walked along, reading
busily, with one hand on Tommy's arm to steer herself. Presently she
shut the book with a bang. They were just approaching the house again.

"Tommy, will you leave this to me? Just for once, you see, I am the
bull that has been more than twenty minutes in the arena."

Tommy nodded.

"You shall be the Captain of the Ship, Tuppence," he said gravely.
"We've got to get to the bottom of this."

"First of all," said Tuppence as they entered the house, "I must ask
Miss Logan one more question."

She ran upstairs. Tommy followed her. She rapped sharply on the old
lady's door, and went in.

"Is that you, my dear?" said Miss Logan. "You know you are much too
young and pretty to be a detective. Have you found out anything?"

"Yes," said Tuppence. "I have."

Miss Logan looked at her questioningly.

"I don't know about being pretty," went on Tuppence, "but being young,
I happened to work in a hospital during the War. I know something about
serum therapeutics. I happen to know that when Ricin is injected in
small doses hypodermically immunity is produced, antiricin is formed.
That fact paved the way for the foundation of serum therapeutics. You
knew that, Miss Logan. You injected Ricin for some time hypodermically
into yourself. Then you let yourself be poisoned with the rest. You
helped your father in his work, and you knew all about Ricin and how to
obtain it and extract it from the seeds. You chose a day when Dennis
Radclyffe was out for tea. It wouldn't do for him to be poisoned at the
same time--he might die before Lois Hargreaves. So long as she died
first, he inherited her money, and at his death it passes to you, his
next of kin. You remember, you told us this morning that his father was
your first cousin."

The old lady stared at Tuppence with baleful eyes.

Suddenly a wild figure burst in from the adjoining room. It was Hannah.
In her hand she held a lighted torch which she waved frantically.

"Truth has been spoken. That is the wicked one. I saw her reading the
book, and smiling to herself and I knew. I found the book and the
page--but it said nothing to me. But the voice of the Lord spoke to
me. She hated my mistress, her ladyship. She was always jealous and
envious. She hated my own sweet Miss Lois. But the wicked shall perish,
the fire of the Lord shall consume them."

Waving her torch she sprang forward to the bed.

A cry arose from the old lady.

"Take her away--take her away. It's true--but take her away."

Tuppence flung herself upon Hannah, but the woman managed to set fire
to the curtains of the bed before Tuppence could get the torch from
her and stamp on it. Tommy, however, had rushed in from the landing
outside. He tore down the bed hangings and managed to stifle the flames
with a rug. Then he rushed to Tuppence's assistance and between them
they subdued Hannah just as Dr. Burton came hurrying in.

A very few words sufficed to put him _au courant_ of the situation.

He hurried to the bedside, lifted Miss Logan's hand, then uttered a
sharp exclamation.

"The shock of fire has been too much for her. She's dead. Perhaps it is
as well under the circumstances."

He paused and then added, "There was Ricin in the cocktail glass as
well."

"It's the best thing that could have happened," said Tommy when they
had relinquished Hannah to the doctor's care, and were alone together.
"Tuppence, you were simply marvellous."

"There wasn't much Hanaud about it," said Tuppence.

"It was too serious for play acting. I still can't bear to think of
that girl. I won't think of her. But, as I said before, you were
marvellous. The honors are with you. To use a familiar quotation, 'It
is a great advantage to be intelligent and not to look it.'"

"Tommy," said Tuppence. "You're a beast."




                              CHAPTER XIX

                         THE UNBREAKABLE ALIBI


Tommy and Tuppence were busy sorting correspondence. Tuppence gave an
exclamation and handed a letter across to Tommy.

"A new client," she said importantly.

"Ha!" said Tommy. "What do we deduce from this letter, Watson? Nothing
much, except the somewhat obvious fact that Mr.--er--Montgomery Jones
is not one of the world's best spellers, thereby proving that he has
been expensively educated."

"Montgomery Jones?" said Tuppence. "Now what do I know about a
Montgomery Jones? Oh, yes, I have got it now. I think Janet St. Vincent
mentioned him. His mother was Lady Aileen Montgomery, very crusty and
high church, with gold crosses and things, and she married a man called
Jones who is immensely rich."

"In fact the same old story," said Tommy. "Let me see, what time does
this Mr. M. J. wish to see us? Ah, eleven thirty."

At eleven thirty precisely a very tall young man with an amiable and
ingenuous countenance entered the outer office and addressed himself to
Albert, the office boy.

"Look here--I say. Can I see Mr.--er--Blunt?"

"Have you an appointment, sir?" said Albert.

"I don't quite know. Yes, I suppose I have. What I mean is I wrote a
letter--"

"What name, sir?"

"Mr. Montgomery Jones."

"I will take your name in to Mr. Blunt."

He returned after a brief interval.

"Will you wait a few minutes please, sir. Mr. Blunt is engaged on a
very important conference at present."

"Oh--er--yes--certainly," said Mr. Montgomery Jones.

Having, he hoped, impressed his client sufficiently Tommy rang the
buzzer on his desk, and Mr. Montgomery Jones was ushered into the inner
office by Albert.

Tommy rose to greet him, and shaking him warmly by the hand motioned
towards the vacant chair.

"Now, Mr. Montgomery Jones," he said briskly, "what can we have the
pleasure of doing for you?"

Mr. Montgomery Jones looked uncertainly at the third occupant of the
office.

"My confidential secretary, Miss Robinson," said Tommy. "You can speak
quite freely before her. I take it that this is some family matter of a
delicate kind?"

"Well--not exactly," said Mr. Montgomery Jones.

"You surprise me," said Tommy. "You are not in trouble of any kind
yourself, I hope?"

"Oh rather not," said Mr. Montgomery Jones.

"Well," said Tommy, "perhaps you will--er--state the facts plainly."

That, however, seemed to be the one thing that Mr. Montgomery Jones
could not do.

"It's a dashed odd sort of thing I have got to ask you," he said
hesitatingly. "I--er--I really don't know how to set about it."

"We never touch divorce cases," said Tommy.

"Oh Lord no," said Mr. Montgomery Jones. "I don't mean that. It is
just, well--it's a deuced silly sort of a joke. That's all."

"Someone has played a practical joke on you of a mysterious nature?"
suggested Tommy.

But Mr. Montgomery Jones once more shook his head.

"Well," said Tommy retiring gracefully from the position, "take your
own time and let us have it in your own words."

There was a pause.

"You see," said Mr. Jones at last, "it was at dinner. I sat next to a
girl."

"Yes?" said Tommy encouragingly.

"She was a--oh, well, I really can't describe her, but she was simply
one of the most sporting girls I ever met. She's an Australian over
here with another girl, sharing a flat with her in Clarges Street.
She's simply game for anything. I absolutely can't tell you the effect
that girl had on me."

"We can quite imagine it, Mr. Jones," said Tuppence.

She saw clearly that if Mr. Montgomery Jones' troubles were ever to be
extracted a sympathetic feminine touch was needed, as distinct from the
business like methods of Mr. Blunt.

"We can understand," said Tuppence encouragingly.

"Well, the whole thing came as an absolute shock to me," said Mr.
Montgomery Jones, "that a girl could, well--knock you over like
that. There had been another girl--in fact two other girls. One was
awfully jolly and all that but I didn't much like her chin. She danced
marvellously though and I have known her all my life which makes a
fellow feel kind of safe, you know. And then there was one of the girls
at the 'Frivolity.' Frightfully amusing, but of course there would be
a lot of ructions with the mater over that, and anyway I really didn't
want to marry either of them, but I was thinking about things you know
and then--slap out of the blue--I sat next to this girl and--"

"The whole world was changed," said Tuppence in a feeling voice.

Tommy moved impatiently in his chair. He was by now somewhat bored by
the recital of Mr. Montgomery Jones' love affairs.

"You put it awfully well," said Mr. Montgomery Jones. "That is
absolutely what it was like. Only, you know, I fancy she didn't think
much of me. You mayn't think it but I am not terribly clever."

"Oh, you mustn't be too modest," said Tuppence.

"Oh, I do realise that I am not much of a chap," said Mr. Jones with an
engaging smile. "Not for a perfectly marvellous girl like that. That
is why I just feel I have got to put this thing through. It's my only
chance. She's such a sporting girl that she would never go back on her
word."

"Well I am sure we wish you luck and all that," said Tuppence kindly.
"But I don't exactly see what you want us to do."

"Oh Lord!" said Mr. Montgomery Jones. "Haven't I explained?"

"No," said Tommy. "You haven't."

"Well, it was like this. We were talking about detective stories.
Una--that's her name--is just as keen about them as I am. We got
talking about one in particular. It all hinges on an alibi. Then we got
talking about alibis and faking them. Then I said--no, she said--now
which of us was it that said it?"

"Never mind which of you it was," said Tuppence.

"I said it would be a jolly difficult thing to do. She disagreed--said
it only wanted a bit of brain work. We got all hot and excited about it
and in the end she said 'I will make you a sporting offer. What do you
bet that I can produce an alibi that nobody can shake?'

"Anything you like, I said, and we settled it then and there. She was
frightfully cocksure about the whole thing. 'It's an odds on chance for
me,' she said. 'Don't be so sure of that,' I said. 'Supposing you lose
and I ask you for anything I like?' She laughed and said she came of a
gambling family and I could."

"Well?" said Tuppence as Mr. Jones came to a pause and looked at her
appealingly.

"Well, don't you see? It is up to me. It is the only chance I have
got of getting a girl like that to look at me. You have no idea how
sporting she is. Last summer she was out in a boat and someone bet her
she wouldn't jump overboard and swim ashore in her clothes, and she did
it."

"It is a very curious proposition," said Tommy. "I am not quite sure I
yet understand it."

"It is perfectly simple," said Mr. Montgomery Jones. "You must be doing
this sort of thing all the time. Investigating fake alibis and seeing
where they fall down."

"Oh--er--yes, of course," said Tommy. "We do a lot of that sort of
work."

"Someone has got to do it for me," said Montgomery Jones. "I shouldn't
be any good at that sort of thing myself. You have only got to catch
her out and everything is all right. I daresay it seems rather a
futile business to you but it means a lot to me and I am prepared to
pay--er--all necessary whatnots you know."

"That will be all right," said Tuppence. "I am sure Mr. Blunt will take
the case on for you."

"Certainly, certainly," said Tommy. "A most refreshing case, most
refreshing indeed."

Mr. Montgomery Jones heaved a sigh of relief and pulled a mass of
papers from his pocket and selected one of them. "Here it is," he said.
"She says, 'I am sending you proof I was in two distinct places at one
and the same time. According to one story I dined at the Bon Temps
Restaurant in Soho by myself, went to the Duke's Theatre and had supper
with a friend, Mr. le Marchant, at the Savoy--_but_ I was also staying
at the Castle Hotel, Torquay, and only returned to London on the
following morning. You have got to find out which of the two stories is
the true one and how I managed the other.'

"There," said Mr. Montgomery Jones. "Now you see what it is that I want
you to do."

"A most refreshing little problem," said Tommy. "Very naïve."

"Here is Una's photograph," said Mr. Montgomery Jones. "You will want
that."

"What is the lady's full name?" inquired Tommy.

"Miss Una Drake. And her address is 180 Clarges Street."

"Thank you," said Tommy. "Well, we will look into the matter for you,
Mr. Montgomery Jones. I hope we shall have good news for you very
shortly."

"I say you know, I am no end grateful," said Mr. Jones rising to his
feet and shaking Tommy by the hand. "It has taken an awful load off my
mind."

Having seen his client out, Tommy returned to the inner office.
Tuppence was at the cupboard that contained the Classic library.

"Inspector French," said Tuppence.

"Eh?" said Tommy.

"Inspector French of course," said Tuppence. "He always does alibis.
I know the exact procedure. We have to go over everything and check
it. At first it will seem all right and then when we examine it more
closely we shall find the flaw."

"There ought not to be much difficulty about that," agreed Tommy. "I
mean, knowing that one of them is a fake to start with makes the thing
almost a certainty I should say. That is what worries me."

"I don't see anything to worry about in that."

"I am worrying about the girl," said Tommy. "She will probably be let
in to marry that young man whether she wants to or not."

"Darling," said Tuppence, "don't be foolish. Women are never the wild
gamblers they appear. Unless that girl was already perfectly prepared
to marry that pleasant but rather empty-headed young man, she would
never have let herself in for a wager of this kind. But, Tommy, believe
me, she will marry him with more enthusiasm and respect if he wins the
wager than if she has to make it easy for him some other way."

"You do think you know about everything," said her husband.

"I do," said Tuppence.

"And now to examine our data," said Tommy drawing the papers towards
him. "First the photograph--hm--quite a nice looking girl--and quite a
good photograph I should say. Clear and easily recognisable."

"We must get some other girls' photographs," said Tuppence.

"Why?"

"They always do," said Tuppence. "You show four or five to waiters and
they pick out the right one."

"Do you think they do?" said Tommy--"pick out the right one I mean."

"Well, they do in books," said Tuppence.

"It is a pity that real life is so different from fiction," said Tommy.
"Now then what have we here? Yes, this is the London lot. Dined at the
Bon Temps seven thirty. Went to Duke's Theatre and saw Delphiniums
Blue. Counterfoil of theatre ticket enclosed. Supper at the Savoy with
Mr. le Marchant. We can, I suppose, interview Mr. le Marchant."

"That tells us nothing at all," said Tuppence, "because if he is
helping her to do it he naturally won't give the show away. We can wash
out anything he says now."

"Well, here is the Torquay end," went on Tommy. "Twelve o'clock train
from Paddington, had lunch in the Restaurant Car, receipted bill
enclosed. Stayed at Castle Hotel for one night. Again receipted bill."

"I think this is all rather weak," said Tuppence. "Anyone can buy a
theatre ticket, you need never go near the theatre. The girl just went
to Torquay and the London thing is a fake."

"If so, it is rather a sitter for us," said Tommy. "Well, I suppose we
might as well go and interview Mr. le Marchant."

Mr. le Marchant proved to be a breezy youth who betrayed no great
surprise on seeing them.

"Una has got some little game on, hasn't she?" he asked. "You never
know what that kid is up to."

"I understand, Mr. le Marchant," said Tommy, "that Miss Drake had
supper with you at the Savoy last Tuesday evening."

"That's right," said Mr. le Marchant. "I know it was Tuesday because
Una impressed it on me at the time and what's more she made me write it
down in a little book."

With some pride he showed an entry faintly pencilled: "Having supper
with Una. Savoy. Tuesday 19th."

"Where had Miss Drake been earlier in the evening? Do you know?"

"She had been to some rotten show called Pink Peonies or something like
that. Absolute slosh so she told me."

"You are quite sure Miss Drake was with you that evening?"

Mr. le Marchant stared at him.

"Why, of course. Haven't I been telling you?"

"Perhaps she asked you to tell us," said Tuppence.

"Well, for a matter of fact she did say something that was rather
dashed odd. She said, what was it now? 'You think you are sitting
here having supper with me, Jimmy, but really, I am having supper two
hundred miles away in Devonshire.' Now that was a dashed odd thing to
say, don't you think so? Sort of astral body stuff. The funny thing is
that a pal of mine, Dicky Rice, thought he saw her there."

"Who is this Mr. Rice?"

"Oh, just a friend of mine. He had been down in Torquay staying with an
aunt. Sort of old bean who is always going to die and never does. Dicky
had been down doing the dutiful nephew. He said, 'I saw that Australian
girl one day--Una something or other. Wanted to go and talk to her but
my aunt carried me off to chat with an old Pussy in a bathchair.' I
said, 'When was this?' and he said, 'Oh, Tuesday about tea time.' I
told him of course that he had made a mistake, but it was odd, wasn't
it? With Una saying that about Devonshire that evening."

"Very odd," said Tommy. "Tell me, Mr. le Marchant, did anyone you know
have supper near you at the Savoy?"

"Some people called Oglander were at the next table."

"Do they know Miss Drake?"

"Oh yes, they know her. They are not frightful friends or anything of
that kind."

"Well, if there's nothing more you can tell us, Mr. le Marchant, I
think we will wish you good morning."

"Either that chap is an extraordinary good liar," said Tommy as they
reached the street, "or else he is speaking the truth."

"Yes," said Tuppence. "I have changed my opinion. I have a sort of
feeling now that Una Drake was at the Savoy for supper that night."

"We will now go to the Bon Temps," said Tommy. "A little food for
starving sleuths is clearly indicated. Let's just get a few girls'
photographs first."

This proved rather more difficult than was expected. Turning into a
photographer's and demanding a few assorted photographs, they were met
with a cold rebuff.

"Why are all the things that are so easy and simple in books so
difficult in real life?" wailed Tuppence. "How horribly suspicious
they looked. What do you think they thought we wanted to do with the
photographs? We had better go and raid Jane's flat."

Tuppence's friend Jane proved of an accommodating disposition and
permitted Tuppence to rummage in a drawer and select four specimens of
former friends of Jane's who had been shoved hastily in to be out of
sight and mind.

Armed with this galaxy of feminine beauty they proceeded to the Bon
Temps where fresh difficulties and much expense awaited them. Tommy
had to get hold of each waiter in turn, tip him and then produce the
assorted photographs. The result was unsatisfactory. At least three
of the photographs were promising starters as having dined there last
Tuesday. They then returned to the office where Tuppence immersed
herself in an A.B.C.

"Paddington twelve o'clock. Torquay three thirty-five. That's the train
and le Marchant's friend, Mr. Sago, or Tapioca or something, saw her
there about tea time."

"We haven't checked his statement, remember," said Tommy. "If, as you
said to begin with, le Marchant is a friend of Una Drake's, he may have
invented this story."

"Oh, we'll hunt up Mr. Rice," said Tuppence. "I have a kind of hunch
that Mr. le Marchant was speaking the truth. No, what I am trying to
get at now is this. Una Drake leaves London by the twelve o'clock
train, possibly takes a room at a hotel and unpacks. Then she takes a
train back to town arriving in time to get to the Savoy. There is one
at four forty gets up to Paddington at nine ten."

"And then?" said Tommy.

"And then," said Tuppence, frowning, "it is rather more difficult.
There is a midnight train from Paddington down again but she could
hardly take that, that would be too early."

"A fast car," suggested Tommy.

"H'm," said Tuppence. "It is just on two hundred miles."

"Australians, I have always been told, drive very recklessly."

"Oh, I suppose it could be done," said Tuppence, "she would arrive
there about seven."

"Are you supposing her to have nipped into her bed at the Castle Hotel
without being seen? Or arriving there explaining that she had been out
all night and could she have her bill, please?"

"Tommy," said Tuppence. "We are idiots. She needn't have gone back to
Torquay at all. She has only got to get a friend to go to the Hotel
there and collect her luggage and pay her bill. Then you get the
receipted bill with the proper date on it."

"I think on the whole we have worked out a very sound hypothesis," said
Tommy. "The next thing to do is to catch the twelve o'clock train to
Torquay to-morrow and verify our brilliant conclusions."

Armed with a portfolio of photographs, Tommy and Tuppence duly
established themselves in a first class carriage the following morning,
and booked seats for the second lunch.

"It probably won't be the same dining car attendants," said Tommy.
"That would be too much luck to expect. I expect we shall have to
travel up and down to Torquay for days before we strike the right ones."

"This alibi business is very trying," said Tuppence. "In books it is
all passed over in two or three paragraphs. Inspector Something then
boarded the train to Torquay and questioned the dining car attendants
and so ended the story."

For once, however, the young couple's luck was in. In answer to their
question the attendant who brought their bill for lunch proved to be
the same one who had been on duty the preceding Tuesday. What Tommy
called the ten shilling note touch then came into action and Tuppence
produced the portfolio.

"I want to know," said Tommy, "if any of these ladies had lunch on this
train on Tuesday last?"

In a gratifying manner worthy of the best detective fiction the man at
once indicated the photograph of Una Drake.

"Yes sir, I remember that lady, and I remember that it was Tuesday,
because the lady herself drew attention to the fact saying it was
always the luckiest day in the week for her."

"So far, so good," said Tuppence as they returned to their compartment.
"And we will probably find that she booked at the Hotel all right.
It is going to be more difficult to prove that she travelled back to
London, but perhaps one of the porters at the station may remember."

Here, however, they drew a blank and crossing to the up platform Tommy
made inquiries of the ticket collector and of various porters. After
the distribution of half crowns as a preliminary to inquiring, two
of the porters picked out one of the other photographs with a vague
remembrance that someone like that travelled to town by the four forty
that afternoon, but there was no identification of Una Drake.

"But that doesn't prove anything," said Tuppence as they left the
station. "She may have travelled by that train and no one noticed her."

"She may have gone from the other station, from Torre."

"That's quite likely," said Tuppence, "however, we can see to that
after we have been to the hotel."

The Castle Hotel was a big one overlooking the sea. After booking a
room for the night and signing the register, Tommy observed pleasantly:

"I believe you had a friend of ours staying here last Tuesday. Miss Una
Drake."

The young lady in the bureau beamed at him.

"Oh yes, I remember quite well. An Australian young lady I believe."

At a sign from Tommy, Tuppence produced the photograph.

"That is rather a charming photograph of her, isn't it?" said Tuppence.

"Oh very nice, very nice indeed, quite stylish."

"Did she stay here long?" inquired Tommy.

"Only one night. She went away by the Express the next morning back
to London. It seemed a long way to come for one night but of course I
suppose Australian ladies don't think anything of travelling."

"She is a very sporting girl," said Tommy, "always having adventures.
It wasn't here, was it, that she went out to dine with some friends,
went for a drive in their car afterwards, ran the car into a ditch and
wasn't able to get home till morning?"

"Oh, no," said the young lady. "Miss Drake had dinner here in the
Hotel."

"Really," said Tommy, "are you sure of that? I mean--how do you know?"

"Oh, I saw her."

"I asked because I understood she was dining with some friends in
Torquay," explained Tommy.

"Oh, no sir, she dined here." The young lady laughed and blushed a
little. "I remember she had on a most sweetly pretty frock. One of
those new flowered chiffons all over pansies."

"Tuppence, this tears it," said Tommy when they had been shown upstairs
to their room.

"It does rather," said Tuppence. "Of course that woman may be mistaken.
We will ask the waiter at dinner. There can't be very many people here
just at this time of year."

This time it was Tuppence who opened the attack.

"Can you tell me if a friend of mine was here last Tuesday?" she asked
the waiter with an engaging smile. "A Miss Drake, wearing a frock all
over pansies I believe." She produced a photograph. "This lady."

The waiter broke into immediate smiles of recognition.

"Yes, yes, Miss Drake. I remember her very well. She told me she came
from Australia."

"She dined here?"

"Yes. It was last Tuesday. She asked me if there was anything to do
afterwards in the town."

"Yes?"

"I told her the theatre, the Pavilion, but in the end she decided not
to go and stayed here listening to our orchestra."

"Oh damn," said Tommy under his breath.

"You don't remember what time she had dinner, do you?" said Tuppence.

"She came down a little late. It must have been about eight o'clock."

"Damn, Blast, and Curse," said Tuppence as she and Tommy left the
dining-room. "Tommy, this is all going wrong. It seemed so clear and
lovely."

"Well, I suppose we ought to have known it wouldn't all be plain
sailing."

"Is there any train she could have taken after that I wonder?"

"Not one that would have landed her in London in time to go to the
Savoy."

"Well," said Tuppence, "as a last hope I am going to talk to the
chambermaid. Una Drake had a room on the same floor as ours."

The chambermaid was a voluble and informative woman. Yes, she
remembered the young lady quite well. That was her picture right
enough. A very nice young lady, very merry and talkative. Had told her
a lot about Australia and the kangaroos.

The young lady rang the bell about half past nine and asked for her
bottle to be filled and put in her bed and also to be called the next
morning at half past seven--with coffee instead of tea.

"You did call her and she was in bed?" asked Tuppence.

The chambermaid stared at her.

"Why, yes Ma'am, of course."

"Oh, I only wondered if she was doing exercises or anything," said
Tuppence, wildly. "So many people do in the early morning."

"Well, that seems cast iron enough," said Tommy, when the chambermaid
had departed. "There is only one conclusion to be drawn from it. It is
the London side of the thing that _must_ be faked."

"Mr. le Marchant must be a more accomplished liar than we thought,"
said Tuppence.

"We have a way of checking his statements," said Tommy. "He said there
were people sitting at the next table whom Una knew slightly. What was
their name--Oglander, that was it. We must hunt up these Oglanders and
we ought also to make inquiries at Miss Drake's flat in Clarges Street."

The following morning they paid their bill and departed somewhat
crestfallen.

Hunting out the Oglanders was fairly easy with the aid of the telephone
book. Tuppence this time took the offensive and assumed the character
of a representative of a new illustrated paper. She called on Mrs.
Oglander asking for a few details of their "smart" supper party at the
Savoy on Tuesday evening. These details Mrs. Oglander was only too
willing to supply. Just as she was leaving Tuppence added carelessly:
"Let me see, wasn't Miss Una Drake sitting at the table next you? Is it
really true that she is engaged to the Duke of Perth? You know her, of
course."

"I know her slightly," said Mrs. Oglander. "A very charming girl I
believe. Yes, she was sitting at the next table to ours with Mr. le
Marchant. My girls know her better than I do."

Tuppence's next port of call was the flat in Clarges Street. Here she
was greeted by Miss Marjory Leicester, the friend with whom Miss Drake
shared a flat.

"Do tell me what all this is about?" asked Miss Leicester plaintively.
"Una has some deep game on and I don't know what it is. Of course she
slept here on Tuesday night."

"Did you see her when she came in?"

"No, I had gone to bed. She has got her own latch key, of course. She
came in about one o'clock, I believe."

"When did you see her?"

"Oh, the next morning about nine--or perhaps it was nearer ten."

As Tuppence left the flat she almost collided with a tall, gaunt female
who was entering.

"Excuse me, Miss, I'm sure," said the gaunt female.

"Do you work here?" asked Tuppence.

"Yes, Miss, I come daily."

"What time do you get here in the morning?"

"Nine o'clock is my time, Miss."

Tuppence slipped a hurried half crown into the gaunt female's hand.

"Was Miss Drake here last Tuesday morning when you arrived?"

"Why yes, Miss, indeed she was. Fast asleep in her bed and hardly woke
up when I brought her in her tea."

"Oh, thank you," said Tuppence and went disconsolately down the stairs.

She had arranged to meet Tommy for lunch in a small Restaurant in Soho
and there they compared notes.

"I have seen that fellow, Rice. It is quite true he did see Una Drake
in the distance at Torquay."

"Well," said Tuppence, "we have checked these alibis all right. Here,
give me a bit of paper and a pencil, Tommy. Let us put it down neatly
like all detectives do."

     1.30       Una Drake seen in Luncheon Car of train.
     4 o'clock  Arrives at Castle Hotel.
     5 o'clock  Seen by Mr. Rice.
     8 o'clock  Seen dining at Hotel.
     9.30       Asks for hot water bottle.
    11.30       Seen at Savoy with Mr. le Marchant.
     7.30 a.m.  Called by chambermaid at Castle Hotel.
     9 o'clock  Called by charwoman at flat at Clarges Street.

They looked at each other.

"Well, it looks to me as if Blunt's Brilliant Detectives are beat,"
said Tommy.

"Oh, we mustn't give up," said Tuppence. "Somebody _must_ be lying!"

"The queer thing is that it strikes me nobody was lying. They all
seemed perfectly truthful and straightforward."

"Yet there must be a flaw. We know there is. I think of all sorts
of things like private aeroplanes but that doesn't really get us any
forwarder."

"I am inclined to the theory of an astral body."

"Well," said Tuppence, "the only thing to do is to sleep on it. Your
subconscious works in your sleep."

"H'm," said Tommy. "If your subconscious provides you with a perfectly
good answer to this riddle by to-morrow morning, I take off my hat to
it."

They were very silent all that evening. Again and again Tuppence
reverted to the paper of times. She wrote things on bits of paper. She
murmured to herself, she sought perplexedly through Rail Guides. But in
the end they both rose to go to bed with no faint glimmer of light on
the problem.

"This is very disheartening," said Tommy.

"One of the most miserable evenings I have ever spent," said Tuppence.

"We ought to have gone to a Music Hall," said Tommy. "A few good jokes
about mothers-in-law and twins and bottles of beer would have done us
no end of good."

"No, you will see this concentration will work in the end," said
Tuppence. "How busy our subconscious will have to be in the next eight
hours!" And on this hopeful note they went to bed.

"Well," said Tommy next morning, "has the subconscious worked?"

"I have got an idea," said Tuppence.

"You have. What sort of an idea?"

"Well, rather a funny idea. Not at all like anything I have ever read
in detective stories. As a matter of fact it is an idea that _you_ put
into my head."

"Then it must be a good idea," said Tommy firmly. "Come on, Tuppence,
out with it."

"I shall have to send a cable to verify it," said Tuppence. "No, I am
not going to tell you. It's a perfectly wild idea but it's the only
thing that fits the facts."

"Well," said Tommy, "I must away to the office. A roomful of
disappointed clients must not wait in vain. I leave this case in the
hands of my promising subordinate."

Tuppence nodded cheerfully.

She did not put in an appearance at the office all day. When Tommy
returned that evening about half past five it was to find a wildly
exultant Tuppence awaiting him.

"I have done it, Tommy. I have solved the mystery of the alibi. We
can charge up all these half crowns and ten shilling notes and demand
a substantial fee of our own from Mr. Montgomery Jones and he can go
right off and collect his girl."

"What is the solution?" cried Tommy.

"A perfectly simple one," said Tuppence. "_Twins._"

"What do you mean?--Twins?"

"Why just that. Of course it is the only solution. I will say you put
it into my head last night talking about mothers-in-law, twins, and
bottles of beer. I cabled to Australia and got back the information
I wanted. Una has a twin sister, Vera, who arrived in England last
Monday. That is why she was able to make this bet so spontaneously.
She thought it would be a frightful rag on poor Montgomery Jones. The
sister went to Torquay and she stayed in London."

"Do you think she'll be terribly despondent that she's lost?" asked
Tommy.

"No," said Tuppence. "I don't. I gave you my views about that before.
She will put all the kudos down to Montgomery Jones. I always think
respect for your husband's abilities should be the foundation of
married life."

"I am glad to have inspired these sentiments in you, Tuppence."

"It is not a really satisfactory solution," said Tuppence. "Not the
ingenious sort of flaw that Inspector French would have detected."

"Nonsense," said Tommy. "I think the way I showed these photographs to
the waiter in the Restaurant was exactly like Inspector French."

"He didn't have to use nearly so many half crowns and ten shilling
notes as we seem to have done," said Tuppence.

"Never mind," said Tommy. "We can charge them all up with additions to
Mr. Montgomery Jones. He will be in such a state of idiotic bliss that
he would probably pay the most enormous bill without jibbing at it."

"So he should," said Tuppence. "Haven't Blunt's Brilliant
Detectives been brilliantly successful? Oh, Tommy, I do think we are
extraordinarily clever. It quite frightens me sometimes."

"The next case we have shall be a Roger Sheringham case and you,
Tuppence, shall be Roger Sheringham."

"I shall have to talk a lot," said Tuppence.

"You do that naturally," said Tommy. "And now I suggest that we carry
out my programme of last night and seek out a Music Hall where they
have plenty of jokes about mothers-in-law, bottles of beer, _and
Twins_."




                              CHAPTER XX

                       THE CLERGYMAN'S DAUGHTER


"I wish," said Tuppence, roaming moodily round the office, "that we
could befriend a clergyman's daughter."

"Why?" asked Tommy.

"You may have forgotten the fact, but I was once a clergyman's daughter
myself. I remember what it was like. Hence this altruistic urge--this
spirit of thoughtful consideration for others--this--"

"You are getting ready to be Roger Sheringham, I see," said Tommy. "If
you will allow me to make a criticism, you talk quite as much as he
does, but not nearly so well."

"On the contrary," said Tuppence, "there is a feminine subtlety about
my conversation, a _je ne sais quoi_, that no gross male could ever
attain to. I have, moreover, powers unknown to my prototype--do I mean
prototype? Words are such uncertain things, they so often sound well
but mean the opposite of what one thinks they do."

"Go on," said Tommy kindly.

"I was. I was only pausing to take breath. Touching these powers, it is
my wish to-day to assist a clergyman's daughter. You will see, Tommy,
the first person to enlist the aid of Blunt's Brilliant Detectives will
be a clergyman's daughter."

"I'll bet you it isn't," said Tommy.

"Done," said Tuppence. "Hist! To your typewriters, Oh! Israel. One
comes."

Mr. Blunt's office was humming with industry as Albert opened the door
and announced:

"Miss Monica Deane."

A slender brown haired girl, rather shabbily dressed, entered and stood
hesitating. Tommy came forward.

"Good morning, Miss Deane. Won't you sit down and tell us what we can
do for you? By the way, let me introduce my confidential secretary,
Miss Sheringham."

"I am delighted to make your acquaintance, Miss Deane," said Tuppence.
"Your father was in the Church, I think."

"Yes, he was. But how _did_ you know that?"

"Oh! we have our methods," said Tuppence. "You mustn't mind me rattling
on. Mr. Blunt likes to hear me talk. He always says it gives him ideas."

The girl stared at her. She was a slender creature, not beautiful,
but possessing a wistful prettiness. She had a quantity of soft
mouse-colored hair, and her eyes were dark blue and very lovely, though
the dark shadows round them spoke of trouble and anxiety.

"Will you tell me your story, Miss Deane?" said Tommy.

The girl turned to him gratefully.

"It's such a long, rambling story," said the girl. "My name is Monica
Deane. My father was the rector of Little Hampsley in Suffolk. He
died three years ago, and my mother and I were left very badly off.
I went out as a governess, but my mother became a confirmed invalid
and I had to come home to look after her. We were desperately poor,
but one day we received a lawyer's letter telling us that an aunt of
my father's had died and had left everything to me. I had often heard
of this aunt who had quarrelled with my father many years ago, and I
knew that she was very well off, so it really seemed that our troubles
were at an end. But matters did not turn out quite as well as we had
hoped. I inherited the house she had lived in, but after paying one or
two small legacies, there was no money left. I suppose she must have
lost it during the war, or perhaps she had been living on her capital.
Still, we had the house, and almost at once we had a chance of selling
it at quite an advantageous price. But, foolishly perhaps, I refused
the offer. We were in tiny, but expensive lodgings, and I thought it
would be much nicer to live in the Red House where my mother could have
comfortable rooms and take in paying guests to cover our expenses.

"I adhered to this plan, notwithstanding a further tempting offer from
the gentlemen who wanted to buy. We moved in, and I advertised for
paying guests. For a time, all went well, we had several answers to our
advertisement, my aunt's old servant remained on with us and she and
I between us did the work of the house. And then these unaccountable
things began to happen."

"What things?"

"The queerest things. The whole place seemed bewitched. Pictures fell
down, crockery flew across the room and broke, one morning we came down
to find all the furniture moved round. At first we thought someone
was playing a practical joke, but we had to give up that explanation.
Sometimes when we were all sitting down to dinner, a terrific crash
would be heard overhead. We would go up and find no one there, but a
piece of furniture thrown violently to the ground."

"A _poltergeist_," cried Tuppence, much interested.

"Yes, that's what Dr. O'Neill said--though I don't know what it means."

"It's a sort of evil spirit that plays tricks," explained Tuppence who
in reality knew very little of the subject, and was not even sure that
she had got the word _poltergeist_ right.

"Well, at any rate, the effect was disastrous. Our visitors were
frightened to death, and left as soon as possible. We got new ones,
and they too left hurriedly. I was in despair, and, to crown all, our
own tiny income ceased suddenly--the Company in which it was invested
failed."

"You poor dear," said Tuppence sympathetically. "What a time you have
had. Did you want Mr. Blunt to investigate this 'haunting' business?"

"Not exactly. You see, three days ago, a gentleman called upon us.
His name was Dr. O'Neill. He told us that he was a member of the
Society for Psychical Research, and that he had heard about the
curious manifestations that had taken place in our house and was much
interested. So much so, that he was prepared to buy it from us, and
conduct a series of experiments there."

"Well?"

"Of course, at first, I was overcome with joy. It seemed the way out of
all our difficulties. But--"

"Yes?"

"Perhaps you will think me fanciful. Perhaps I am. But--oh! I'm sure I
haven't made a mistake. It was the same man!"

"What same man?"

"The same man who wanted to buy it before. Oh! I'm sure I'm right."

"But why shouldn't it be?"

"You don't understand. The two men were quite different, different name
and everything. The first man was quite young, a spruce dark young man
of thirty odd. Dr. O'Neill is about fifty, he has a grey beard and
wears glasses and stoops. But when he talked I saw a gold tooth on one
side of his mouth. It only shows when he laughs. The other man had a
tooth in just the same position, and then I looked at his ears. I had
noticed the other man's ears, because they were a peculiar shape with
hardly any lobe. Dr. O'Neill's were just the same. Both things couldn't
be a coincidence, could they? I thought and thought and finally I wrote
and said I would let him know in a week. I had noticed Mr. Blunt's
advertisement some time ago--as a matter of fact in an old paper that
lined one of the kitchen drawers. I cut it out and came up to town."

"You were quite right," said Tuppence, nodding her head with vigor.
"This needs looking into."

"A very interesting case, Miss Deane," observed Tommy. "We shall be
pleased to look into this for you--eh, Miss Sheringham?"

"Rather," said Tuppence, "and we'll get to the bottom of it too."

"I understand, Miss Deane," went on Tommy, "that the household consists
of you and your mother and a servant. Can you give me any particulars
about the servant?"

"Her name is Crockett. She was with my aunt about eight or ten years.
She is an elderly woman, not very pleasant in manner, but a good
servant. She is inclined to give herself airs because her sister
married out of her station. Crockett has a nephew whom she is always
telling us is 'quite the gentleman.'"

"H'm," said Tommy, rather at a loss how to proceed.

Tuppence had been eyeing Monica keenly, now she spoke with sudden
decision.

"I think the best plan would be for Miss Deane to come out and lunch
with me. It's just on one o'clock. I can get full details from her."

"Certainly, Miss Sheringham," said Tommy. "An excellent plan."

"Look here," said Tuppence when they were comfortably ensconced at a
little table in a neighboring restaurant, "I want to know. Is there any
special reason why you want to find out about all this?"

Monica blushed.

"Well, you see--"

"Out with it," said Tuppence encouragingly.

"Well--there are two men who--who--want to marry me."

"The usual story, I suppose? One rich, one poor, and the poor one is
the one you like!"

"I don't know how you know all these things," murmured the girl.

"That's a sort of law of Nature," explained Tuppence. "It happens to
everybody. It happens to me."

"You see, even if I sell the house, it won't bring us enough to live
on. Gerald is a dear, but he's desperately poor--though he's a very
clever engineer and if only he had a little capital, his firm would
take him into partnership. The other, Mr. Partridge, is a very good
man, I am sure--and well off, and if I married him it would be an end
of all our troubles. But--but--"

"I know," said Tuppence sympathetically. "It isn't the same thing at
all. You can go on telling yourself how good and worthy he is, and
adding up his qualities as though they were an addition sum--and it all
has a simply refrigerating effect."

Monica nodded.

"Well," said Tuppence, "I think it would be as well if we went down
to the neighborhood and studied matters upon the spot. What is the
address?"

"The Red House, Stourton in the Marsh."

Tuppence wrote down the address in her note book.

"I didn't ask you," Monica began--"about terms--" she ended, blushing a
little.

"Our payments are strictly by results," said Tuppence gravely. "If the
secret of the Red House is a profitable one, as seems possible from the
anxiety displayed to acquire the property, we should expect a small
percentage, otherwise--nothing!"

"Thank you very much," said the girl gratefully.

"And now," said Tuppence, "don't worry. Everything's going to be all
right. Let's enjoy lunch and talk of interesting things."




                              CHAPTER XXI

                             THE RED HOUSE


"Well," said Tommy, looking out of the window of the Crown and Anchor,
"here we are at Toad in the Hole--or whatever this blasted village is
called."

"Let us review the case," said Tuppence.

"By all means," said Tommy. "To begin with, getting my say in first,
_I_ suspect the invalid mother!"

"Why?"

"My dear Tuppence, grant that this _poltergeist_ business is all a put
up job, got up in order to persuade the girl to sell the house, someone
must have thrown the things about. Now the girl said everyone was at
dinner--but if the mother is a thoroughgoing invalid, she'd be upstairs
in her room."

"If she was an invalid she could hardly throw furniture about."

"Ah! but she wouldn't be a real invalid. She'd be shamming."

"Why?"

"There you have me," confessed her husband. "I was really going on the
well known principle of suspecting the most unlikely person."

"You always make fun of everything," said Tuppence severely. "There
must be _something_ that makes these people so anxious to get hold of
the house. And if you don't care about getting to the bottom of this
matter, I do. I like that girl. She's a dear."

Tommy nodded seriously enough.

"I quite agree. But I never can resist ragging you, Tuppence. Of course
there's something queer about the house, and whatever it is, it's
something that's difficult to get at. Otherwise a mere burglary would
do the trick. But to be willing to buy the house means either that
you've got to take up floors or pull down walls, or else that there's a
coal mine under the back garden!"

"I don't want it to be a coal mine. Buried treasure is much more
romantic."

"H'm," said Tommy. "In that case I think that I shall pay a visit to
the local Bank Manager, explain that I am staying here over Christmas
and probably buying the Red House, and discuss the question of opening
an account."

"But why--?"

"Wait and see."

Tommy returned at the end of half an hour. His eyes were twinkling.

"We advance, Tuppence. Our interview proceeded on the lines indicated.
I then asked casually whether he had had much gold paid in, as is
often the case nowadays in these small country banks--small farmers
who hoarded it during the War, you understand. From that we proceeded
quite naturally to the extraordinary vagaries of old ladies. I
invented an aunt, who on the outbreak of the War, drove to the Army
and Navy Stores in a four wheeler, and returned with sixteen hams. He
immediately mentioned a client of his own who had insisted on drawing
out every penny of money she had--in gold as far as possible, and who
also insisted on having her securities, bearer bonds and such things,
given into her own custody. I exclaimed on such an act of folly, and he
mentioned casually that she was the former owner of the Red House. You
see, Tuppence? She drew out all this money, and she hid it somewhere.
You remember that Monica Deane mentioned that they were astonished at
the small amount of her estate? Yes, she hid it in the Red House, and
someone knows about it. I can make a pretty good guess who that someone
is too."

"Who?"

"What about the faithful Crockett? She would know all about her
mistress's peculiarities."

"And that gold-toothed Dr. O'Neill?"

"The gentlemanly nephew, of course! That's it. But whereabouts did she
hide it? You know more about old ladies than I do, Tuppence. Where do
they hide things?"

"Wrapped up in stockings and petticoats, under mattresses."

Tommy nodded.

"I expect you're right. All the same, she can't have done that because
it would have been found when her things were turned over. It worries
me--you see, an old lady like that can't have taken up floors or
dug holes in the garden. All the same it's there in the Red House
somewhere. Crockett hasn't found it, but she knows it's there, and once
they get the house to themselves, she and her precious nephew, they can
turn it upside down until they find what they're after. We've got to
get ahead of them. Come on, Tuppence. We'll go to the Red House."

Monica Deane received them. To her mother and Crockett they were
represented as would be purchasers of the Red House which would account
for their being taken all over the house and grounds. Tommy did not
tell Monica of the conclusions he had come to, but he asked her various
searching questions. Of the garments and personal belongings of the
dead woman, some had been given to Crockett and the others sent to
various poor families. Everything had been gone through and turned out.

"Did your aunt leave any papers?"

"The desk was full, and there were some in a drawer in her bedroom, but
there was nothing of importance amongst them."

"Have they been thrown away?"

"No, my mother is always very loath to throw away old papers. There
were some old fashioned recipes among them which she intends to go
through one day."

"Good," said Tommy approvingly. Then, indicating an old man who was at
work upon one of the flower beds in the garden, he asked: "Was that old
man the gardener here in your aunt's time?"

"Yes, he used to come three days a week. He lives in the village. Poor
old fellow, he is past doing any really useful work. We have him just
once a week to keep things tidied up. We can't afford more."

Tommy winked at Tuppence to indicate that she was to keep Monica with
her, and he himself stepped across to where the gardener was working.
He spoke a few pleasant words to the old man, asked him if he had been
there in the old lady's time, and then said casually:

"You buried a box for her once, didn't you?"

"No, sir, I never buried naught for her. What should she want to bury a
box for?"

Tommy shook his head. He strolled back to the house frowning. It was
to be hoped that a study of the old lady's papers would yield some
clue--otherwise the problem was a hard one to solve. The house itself
was old fashioned, but not old enough to contain a secret room or
passage.

Before leaving, Monica brought them down a big cardboard box, tied with
string.

"I've collected all the papers," she whispered. "And they're in here.
I thought you could take it away with you, and then you'll have plenty
of time to go over them--but I'm sure you won't find anything to throw
light on the mysterious happenings in this house--"

Her words were interrupted by a terrific crash overhead. Tommy ran
quickly up the stairs. A jug and basin in one of the front rooms was
lying on the ground broken to pieces. There was no one in the room.

"The ghost up to its tricks again," he murmured with a grin.

He went down stairs again thoughtfully.

"I wonder, Miss Deane, if I might speak to the maid, Crockett, for a
minute."

"Certainly. I will ask her to come to you."

Monica went off to the kitchen. She returned with the elderly maid who
had opened the door to them earlier.

"We are thinking of buying this house," said Tommy pleasantly, "and my
wife was wondering whether, in that case, you would care to remain on
with us?"

Crockett's respectable face displayed no emotion of any kind.

"Thank you, sir," she said. "I should like to think it over if I may."

Tommy turned to Monica.

"I am delighted with the house, Miss Deane. I understand that there is
another buyer in the market. I know what he has offered for the house,
and I will willingly give a hundred more. And mind you, that is a good
price I am offering."

Monica murmured something noncommittal, and the Beresfords took their
leave.

"I was right," said Tommy, as they went down the drive. "Crockett's in
it. Did you notice that she was out of breath? That was from running
down the back stairs after smashing the jug and basin. Sometimes, very
likely, she has admitted her nephew secretly, and he has done a little
poltergeisting, or whatever you call it, whilst she has been innocently
with the family. You'll see, Dr. O'Neill will make a further offer
before the day is out."

True enough, after dinner a note was brought. It was from Monica.

"I have just heard from Dr. O'Neill. He raises his previous offer by
£150."

"The nephew must be a man of means," said Tommy thoughtfully. "And I
tell you what, Tuppence, the prize he's after must be well worth while."

"Oh! Oh! Oh! if only we could find it!"

"Well, let's get on with the spade work."

They were sorting through the big box of papers, a wearisome affair, as
they were all jumbled up pell mell without any kind of order or method.
Every few minutes they compared notes.

"What's the latest, Tuppence?"

"Two old receipted bills, three unimportant letters, a recipe for
preserving new potatoes and one for making lemon cheesecake. What's
yours?"

"One bill, poem on Spring, two newspaper cuttings: 'Why Women buy
Pearls--a sound investment' and 'Man with Four Wives--Extraordinary
Story,' and a recipe for Jugged Hare."

"It's heart breaking," said Tuppence, and they fell to once more. At
last the box was empty. They looked at each other.

"I put this aside," said Tommy, picking up a half sheet of notepaper,
"because it struck me as peculiar. But I don't suppose it's got
anything to do with what we're looking for."

"Let's see it. Oh! it's one of those funny things, what do they call
them? Anagrams, charades or something." She read it:

    "My _first_ you put on glowing coal
    And into it you put my _whole_
    My _second_ really is the first
    My third mislikes the winter blast."

"H'm," said Tommy critically. "I don't think much of the poet's rhymes."

"I don't see what you find peculiar about it, though," said Tuppence.
"Everybody used to have a collection of these sort of things about
fifty years ago. You saved them up for winter evenings round the fire."

"I wasn't referring to the verse. It's the words written below it that
strike me as peculiar."

"St. Luke XI. 9," she said. "It's a text."

"Yes. Doesn't that strike you as odd? Would an old lady of a religious
persuasion write a text just under a charade?"

"It is rather odd," agreed Tuppence thoughtfully.

"I presume that you, being a clergyman's daughter, have got your Bible
with you?"

"As a matter of fact I have. Aha, you didn't expect that. Wait a sec."

Tuppence ran to her suit case, extracted a small red volume and
returned to the table. She turned the leaves rapidly. "Here we are.
Luke, Chapter XI, Verse 9. Oh! Tommy, look."

Tommy bent over and looked where Tuppence's small finger pointed to a
portion of the verse in question.

"_Seek, and ye shall find._"

"That's it," cried Tuppence. "We've got it! Solve the cryptogram and
the treasure is ours--or rather Monica's."

"Well, let's get to work on the cryptogram, as you call it. 'My _first_
you put on glowing coal.' What does that mean, I wonder? Then--'My
_second_ really is the first.' That's pure gibberish."

"It's quite simple really," said Tuppence kindly. "It's just a sort of
knack. Let _me_ have it."

Tommy surrendered it willingly. Tuppence ensconced herself in an arm
chair, and began muttering to herself with bent brows.

"It's quite simple really," murmured Tommy when half an hour had
elapsed.

"Don't crow! We're the wrong generation for this. I've a good mind to
go back to town to-morrow and call on some old pussy who would probably
read it as easy as winking. It's a knack, that's all."

"Well, let's have one more try."

"There aren't many things you can put on glowing coal," said Tuppence
thoughtfully. "There's water, to put it out, or wood, or a kettle."

"It must be one syllable, I suppose? What about _wood_, then?"

"You couldn't put anything _into_ wood, though."

"There's no one syllable word instead of _water_, but there must be one
syllable things you can put on a fire in the kettle line."

"Saucepans," mused Tuppence. "Frying pans. How about _pan_? Or _pot_?
What's a word beginning pan or pot that is something you cook?"

"Pottery," suggested Tommy. "You bake that in the fire. Wouldn't that
be near enough?"

"The rest of it doesn't fit. Pancakes? No. Oh! bother."

They were interrupted by the little serving maid, who told them that
dinner would be ready in a few minutes.

"Only Mrs. Lumley, she wanted to know if you'd like your potatoes
fried, or boiled in their jackets? She's got some of each."

"Boiled in their jackets," said Tuppence promptly. "I love potatoes--"
She stopped dead with her mouth open.

"What's the matter, Tuppence? Have you seen a ghost?"

"Tommy," cried Tuppence. "Don't you see? That's it! The word, I mean.
_Potatoes!_ 'My _first_ you put on glowing coal'--that's _pot_. 'And
into it you put my whole.' 'My _second_ really is the first.' That's
A, the first letter of the alphabet. 'My _third_ mislikes the wintry
blast'--cold _toes_ of course!"

"You're right, Tuppence. Very clever of you. But I'm afraid we've
wasted an awful lot of time over nothing. Potatoes don't fit in at all
with missing treasure. Half a sec., though. What did you read out just
now, when we were going through the box? Something about a recipe for
New Potatoes. I wonder whether there's anything in that."

He rummaged hastily through the pile of recipes.

"Here it is. 'TO KEEP NEW POTATOES. Put the new potatoes into tins and
bury them in the garden. Even in the middle of winter, they will taste
as though freshly dug.'"

"We've got it," screamed Tuppence. "That's it. The treasure is in the
garden, buried in a tin."

"But I asked the gardener. He said he'd never buried anything."

"Yes, I know, but that's because people never really answer what you
say, they answer what they think you mean. He knew he'd never buried
anything out of the common. We'll go to-morrow and ask him where he
buried the potatoes."

The following morning was Christmas Eve. By dint of inquiry they found
the old gardener's cottage. Tuppence broached the subject after some
minutes' conversation.

"I wish one could have new potatoes at Christmas time," she remarked.
"Wouldn't they be good with turkey? Do people round here ever bury them
in tins? I've heard that keeps them fresh."

"Ay, that they do," declared the old man. "Old Miss Deane, up to the
Red House, she allus had three tins buried every summer, and as often
as not forgot to have 'em dug up again!"

"In the bed by the house, as a rule, didn't she?"

"No, over against the wall by the fir tree."

Having got the information they wanted, they soon took their leave of
the old man, presenting him with five shillings as a Christmas box.

"And now for Monica," said Tommy.

"Tommy! You have no sense of the dramatic. Leave it to me. I've got a
beautiful plan. Do you think you could manage to beg, borrow, or steal
a spade?"

Somehow or other, a spade was duly produced, and that night, late,
two figures might have been seen stealing into the grounds of the Red
House. The place indicated by the gardener was easily found, and Tommy
set to work. Presently his spade rang on metal, and a few seconds later
he had unearthed a big biscuit tin. It was sealed round with adhesive
plaster and firmly fastened down, but Tuppence, by the aid of Tommy's
knife, soon managed to open it. Then she gave a groan. The tin was full
of potatoes. She poured them out so that the tin was completely empty,
but there were no other contents.

"Go on digging, Tommy."

It was some time before a second tin rewarded their search. As before
Tuppence unsealed it.

"Well?" demanded Tommy anxiously.

"Potatoes again!"

"Damn!" said Tommy and set to once more.

"The third time is lucky," said Tuppence consolingly.

"I believe the whole thing's a mare's nest," said Tommy gloomily, but
he continued to dig.

At last a third tin was brought to light.

"Potatoes aga--" began Tuppence, then stopped. "Oh! Tommy, we've got
it. It's only potatoes on top. Look!"

She held up a big old fashioned velvet bag.

"Cut along home," cried Tommy. "It's icy cold. Take the bag with you. I
must just shovel back the earth. And may a thousand curses light upon
your head, Tuppence, if you open that bag before I come!"

"I'll play fair. Ouch! I'm frozen." She beat a speedy retreat.

On arrival at the Inn she had not long to wait. Tommy was hard upon her
heels, perspiring freely after his digging and the final brisk run.

"Now then," said Tommy. "The private inquiry agents make good! Open the
loot, Mrs. Beresford."

Inside the bag was a package done up in oil silk and a heavy chamois
leather bag. They opened the latter first. It was full of gold
sovereigns. Tommy counted them.

"Two hundred pounds. That was all they would let her have, I suppose.
Cut open the package."

Tuppence did so. It was full of closely folded banknotes. Tommy and
Tuppence counted them carefully. They amounted to exactly twenty
thousand pounds!

"Whew!" said Tommy. "Isn't it lucky for Monica that we're both rich and
honest? What's that done up in tissue paper?"

Tuppence unrolled the little parcel and drew out a magnificent string
of pearls, exquisitely matched.

"I don't know much about these things," said Tommy slowly, "but I'm
pretty sure that those pearls are worth another five thousand pounds at
least. Look at the size of them. Now I see why the old lady kept that
cutting about pearls being a good investment. She must have realized
all her securities and turned them into notes and jewels."

"Oh! Tommy, isn't it wonderful? Darling Monica. Now she can marry her
nice young man and live happily ever afterwards, like me."

"That's rather sweet of you, Tuppence. So you _are_ happy with me?"

"As a matter of fact," said Tuppence, "I am. But I didn't mean to say
so. It slipped out. What with being excited, and Christmas Eve, and one
thing and another--"

"If you really love me," said Tommy, "will you answer me one question?"

"I hate these catches," said Tuppence. "But--well--all right."

"Then how did you know that Monica was a clergyman's daughter?"

"Oh, that was just cheating," said Tuppence happily. "I opened her
letter making an appointment, and a Mr. Deane was Father's curate
once and he had a little girl called Monica, about four or five years
younger than me. So I put two and two together."

"You are a shameless creature," said Tommy. "Hullo, there's twelve
o'clock striking. Happy Christmas, Tuppence."

"Happy Christmas, Tommy. It'll be a Happy Christmas for Monica too--and
all owing to us. I am glad. Poor thing, she has been so miserable. Do
you know, Tommy, I feel all queer and choky about the throat when I
think of it."

"Darling Tuppence," said Tommy.

"Darling Tommy," said Tuppence. "How awfully sentimental we are
getting."

"Christmas comes but once a year," said Tommy sententiously. "That's
what our great grandmothers said and I expect there's a lot of truth in
it still."




                             CHAPTER XXII

                        THE AMBASSADOR'S BOOTS


"My dear fellow, my dear fellow," said Tuppence and waved a heavily
buttered muffin.

Tommy looked at her for a minute or two, then a broad grin spread over
his face and he murmured.

"We do have to be so very careful."

"That's right," said Tuppence delighted. "You guessed. I am the famous
Dr. Fortune and you are Superintendent Bell."

"Why are you being Reginald Fortune?"

"Well really because I feel like a lot of hot butter."

"That is the pleasant side of it," said Tommy. "But there is another.
You will have to examine horribly smashed faces and very extra dead
bodies a good deal."

In answer Tuppence threw across a letter. Tommy's eyebrows rose in
astonishment.

"Randolph Wilmott, the American Ambassador. I wonder what he wants."

"We shall know to-morrow at eleven o'clock."

Punctually to the time named, Mr. Randolph Wilmott, United States
Ambassador to the Court of St. James, was ushered into Mr. Blunt's
office. He cleared his throat and commenced speaking in a deliberate
and characteristic manner.

"I have come to you, Mr. Blunt--By the way, it is Mr. Blunt himself to
whom I am speaking, is it not?"

"Certainly," said Tommy. "I am Theodore Blunt, the head of the firm."

"I always prefer to deal with heads of departments," said Mr. Wilmott.
"It is more satisfactory in every way. As I was about to say, Mr.
Blunt, this business gets my goat. There's nothing in it to trouble
Scotland Yard about--I'm not a penny the worse in any way, and it's
probably all due to a simple mistake. But all the same, I don't see
just how that mistake arose. There's nothing criminal in it, I daresay,
but I'd like just to get the thing straightened out. It makes me mad
not to see the why and wherefore of a thing."

"Absolutely," said Tommy.

Mr. Wilmott went on. He was slow and given to much detail. At last
Tommy managed to get a word in.

"Quite so," he said, "the position is this. You arrived by the liner
Nomadic a week ago. In some way your kitbag and the kitbag of another
gentleman, Mr. Ralph Westerham whose initials are the same as yours,
got mixed up. You took Mr. Westerham's kitbag, and he took yours. Mr.
Westerham discovered the mistake immediately, sent round your kitbag to
the Embassy, and took away his own. Am I right so far?"

"That is precisely what occurred. The two bags must have been
practically identical, and with the initials R.W. being the same in
both cases, it is not difficult to understand that an error might have
been made. I myself was not aware of what had happened until my valet
informed me of the mistake, and that Mr. Westerham--he is a Senator,
and a man for whom I have a great admiration--had sent round for his
bag and returned mine."

"Then I don't see--"

"But you will see. That's only the beginning of the story. Yesterday,
as it chanced, I ran up against Senator Westerham, and I happened to
mention the matter to him jestingly. To my great surprise, he did not
seem to know what I was talking about, and when I explained, he denied
the story absolutely. He had not taken my bag off the ship in mistake
for his own--in fact, he had not travelled with such an article amongst
his luggage."

"What an extraordinary thing!"

"Mr. Blunt, it _is_ an extraordinary thing. There seems no rhyme or
reason in it. Why, if anyone wanted to steal my kitbag, he could do so
easily enough without resorting to all this round about business! And
anyway, it was _not_ stolen, but returned to me. On the other hand,
if it were taken by mistake, why use Senator Westerham's name? It's a
crazy business--but just for curiosity I mean to get to the bottom of
it. I hope the case is not too trivial for you to undertake?"

"Not at all. It is a very intriguing little problem, capable as you
say, of many simple explanations, but nevertheless baffling on the face
of it. The first thing, of course, is the _reason_ of the substitution,
if substitution it was. You say nothing was missing from your bag when
it came back into your possession?"

"My man says not. He would know."

"What was in it, if I may ask?"

"Mostly boots."

"Boots," said Tommy discouraged.

"Yes," said Mr. Wilmott. "Boots. Odd, isn't it?"

"You'll forgive my asking you," said Tommy, "but you didn't carry any
secret papers, or anything of that sort sewn in the lining of a boot or
screwed into a false heel?"

The Ambassador seemed amused by the question.

"Secret diplomacy hasn't got to that pitch, I hope."

"Only in fiction," said Tommy with an answering smile, and a slightly
apologetic manner. "But you see, we've got to account for the thing
somehow. Who came for the bag--the other bag, I mean?"

"Supposed to be one of Westerham's servants. Quite a quiet ordinary
man, so I understand. My valet saw nothing wrong with him."

"Had it been unpacked, do you know?"

"That I can't say. I presume not. But perhaps you'd like to ask the
valet a few questions? He can tell you more than I can about the
business."

"I think that would be the best plan, Mr. Wilmott."

The Ambassador scribbled a few words on a card and handed it to Tommy.

"I opine that you would prefer to go round to the Embassy and make your
inquiries there? If not, I will have the man,--his name is Richards, by
the way--sent round here."

"No, thank you, Mr. Wilmott. I should prefer to go to the Embassy."

The Ambassador rose, glancing at his watch.

"Dear me, I shall be late for an appointment. Well, good bye, Mr.
Blunt. I leave the matter in your hands."

He hurried away. Tommy looked at Tuppence who had been scribbling
demurely on her pad in the character of the efficient Miss Robinson.

"What about it, old thing?" he asked. "Do you see, as the old bird put
it, any rhyme or reason in the proceeding?"

"None whatever," replied Tuppence cheerily.

"Well, that's a start anyway! It shows that there is really something
very deep at the back of it."

"You think so?"

"It's a generally accepted hypothesis. Remember Sherlock Holmes and the
depth the butter had sunk into the parsley--I mean the other way round.
I've always had a devouring wish to know all about that case. Perhaps
Watson will disinter it from his notebook one of these days. Then I
shall die happy. But we must get busy."

"Quite so," said Tuppence. "Not a quick man, the esteemed Wilmott, but
sure."

"She knows men," said Tommy. "Or do I say _he_ knows men. It is so
confusing when you assume the character of a male detective."

"Oh! my dear fellow, my dear fellow!"

"A little more action, Tuppence, and a little less repetition."

"A classic phrase cannot be repeated too often," said Tuppence with
dignity.

"Have a muffin," said Tommy kindly.

"Not at eleven o'clock in the morning, thank you. Silly case, this.
Boots--you know--Why boots?"

"Well," said Tommy, "why not?"

"It doesn't fit. Boots." She shook her head. "All wrong. Who wants
other people's boots? The whole thing's mad."

"Perhaps they got hold of the wrong bag?" suggested Tommy.

"That's possible. But if they were after papers, a despatch case would
be more likely. Papers are the only things one thinks of in connection
with ambassadors."

"Boots suggest footprints," said Tommy thoughtfully. "Do you think
they wanted to lay a trail of Wilmott's footsteps somewhere?"

Tuppence considered the suggestion, abandoning her rôle, then shook her
head.

"It seems wildly impossible," she said. "No, I believe we shall have to
resign ourselves to the fact that the boots have nothing to do with it."

"Well," said Tommy with a sigh. "The next step is to interview friend
Richards. He may be able to throw some light on the mystery."

On production of the Ambassador's card, Tommy was admitted to the
Embassy, and presently a pale young man, with a respectful manner, and
a subdued voice, presented himself to undergo examination.

"I am Richards, sir, Mr. Wilmott's valet. I understood you wished to
see me?"

"Yes, Richards. Mr. Wilmott called on me this morning, and suggested
that I should come round and ask you a few questions. It is this matter
of the kitbag."

"Mr. Wilmott was rather upset over the affair, I know, sir. I can
hardly see why, since no harm was done. I certainly understood from the
man who called for the other bag that it belonged to Senator Westerham,
but of course I may have been mistaken."

"What kind of a man was he?"

"Middle-aged. Grey hair. Very good class, I should say--most
respectable. I understood he was Senator Westerham's valet. He left Mr.
Wilmott's bag and took away the other."

"Had it been unpacked at all?"

"Which one, sir?"

"Well, I meant the one you brought from the boat. But I should like
to know about the other as well--Mr. Wilmott's own. Had that been
unpacked, do you fancy?"

"I should say not, sir. It was just as I strapped it up on the boat. I
should say the gentleman--whoever he was--just opened it--realised it
wasn't his, and shut it up again."

"Nothing missing? No small article?"

"I don't think so, sir. In fact, I'm quite sure."

"And now the other one. Had you started to unpack that?"

"As a matter of fact, sir, I was just opening it at the very moment
Senator Westerham's man arrived. I'd just undone the straps."

"Did you open it at all?"

"We just unfastened it together, sir, to be sure no mistake had been
made this time. The man said it was all right, and he strapped it up
again and took it away."

"What was inside? Boots also?"

"No, sir, mostly toilet things, I fancy. I know I saw a tin of bath
salts."

Tommy abandoned that line of research.

"You never saw anyone tampering with anything in your master's cabin on
board ship, I suppose?"

"Oh, no, sir."

"Never anything suspicious of any kind?"

"And what do I mean by that, I wonder," he thought to himself with a
trace of amusement. "Anything suspicious--just words!"

But the man in front of him hesitated.

"Now that I remember it--"

"Yes," said Tommy eagerly. "What?"

"I don't think it could have anything to do with it. But there was a
young lady."

"Yes? A young lady, you say, what was she doing?"

"She was taken faint, sir. A very pleasant young lady. Miss Eileen
O'Hara, her name was. A dainty looking lady, not tall, with black hair.
Just a little foreign looking."

"Yes?" said Tommy, with even greater eagerness.

"As I was saying, she was taken queer. Just outside Mr. Wilmott's
cabin. She asked me to fetch the doctor. I helped her to the sofa, and
then went off for the doctor. I was some time finding him, and when I
found him and brought him back, the young lady was nearly all right
again."

"Oh!" said Tommy.

"You don't think, sir--"

"It's difficult to know what to think," said Tommy noncommittally. "Was
this Miss O'Hara travelling alone?"

"Yes, I think so, sir."

"You haven't seen her since you landed?"

"No, sir."

"Well," said Tommy, after a minute or two spent in reflection. "I think
that's all. Thank you, Richards."

"Thank _you_, sir."

Back at the office of the Detective Agency, Tommy retailed his
conversation with Richards to Tuppence who listened attentively.

"What do you think of it, Tuppence?"

"Oh! my dear fellow, we doctors are always sceptical of a sudden
faintness! So very convenient. And Eileen as well as O'Hara. Almost too
impossibly Irish, don't you think?"

"It's something to go upon at last. Do you know what I am going to do,
Tuppence? Advertise for the lady."

"What?"

"Yes. Any information respecting Miss Eileen O'Hara, known to have
travelled such and such a ship and such and such a date. Either she'll
answer it herself if she's genuine, or someone may come forward to give
us information about her. So far, it's the only hope of a clue."

"You'll also put her on her guard, remember."

"Well," said Tommy. "One's got to risk something."

"I still can't see any sense in the thing," said Tuppence, frowning.
"If a gang of crooks get hold of the Ambassador's bag for an hour or
two, and then send it back, what possible good can it do them? Unless
there are papers in it they want to copy, and Mr. Wilmott swears there
was nothing of the kind."

Tommy stared at her thoughtfully.

"You put these things rather well, Tuppence," he said at last. "You've
given me an idea."

       *       *       *       *       *

It was two days later. Tuppence was out to lunch. Tommy, alone in the
austere office of Mr. Theodore Blunt, was improving his mind by reading
the latest sensational thriller.

The door of the office opened and Albert appeared.

"A young lady to see you, sir. Miss Cicely March. She says she has
called in answer to an advertisement."

"Show her in at once," cried Tommy, thrusting his novel into a
convenient drawer.

In another minute Albert had ushered in the young lady. Tommy had just
time to see that she was fair haired and extremely pretty when the
amazing occurrence happened.

The door through which Albert had just passed out was rudely burst
open. In the doorway stood a picturesque figure--a big dark man,
Spanish in appearance, with a flaming red tie. His features were
distorted with rage, and in his hand was a gleaming pistol.

"So this is the office of Mr. Busybody Blunt," he said in perfect
English. His voice was low and venomous. "Hands up at once--or I shoot."

It sounded no idle threat. Tommy's hands went up obediently. The girl,
crouched against the wall, gave a gasp of terror.

"This young lady will come with me," said the man. "Yes, you will,
my dear. You have never seen me before, but that doesn't matter. I
can't have my plans ruined by a silly little chit like you. I seem to
remember that you were one of the passengers on the Nomadic. You must
have been peering into things that didn't concern you--but I've no
intention of letting you blab any secrets to Mr. Blunt here. A very
clever gentleman, Mr. Blunt, with his fancy advertisements. But as it
happens, I keep an eye on the advertisement columns. That's how I got
wise to his little game."

"You interest me exceedingly," said Tommy. "Won't you go on?"

"Cheek won't help you, Mr. Blunt. From now on, you're a marked man.
Give up this investigation, and we'll leave you alone. Otherwise--God
help you! Death comes swiftly to those who thwart our plans."

Tommy did not reply. He was staring over the intruder's shoulder as
though he saw a ghost.

As a matter of fact he was seeing something that caused him far more
apprehension than any ghost could have done. Up to now, he had not
given a thought to Albert as a factor in the game. He had taken for
granted that Albert had already been dealt with by the mysterious
stranger. If he had thought of him at all, it was as one lying stunned
on the carpet in the outer office.

He now saw that Albert had miraculously escaped the stranger's
attention. But instead of rushing out to fetch a policeman in good
sound British fashion, Albert had elected to play a lone hand. The door
behind the stranger had opened noiselessly, and Albert stood in the
aperture enveloped in a coil of rope.

An agonized yelp of protest burst from Tommy, but too late. Fired with
enthusiasm, Albert flung a loop of rope over the intruder's head, and
jerked him backwards off his feet.

The inevitable happened. The pistol went off with a roar and Tommy
felt the bullet scorch his ear in passing, ere it buried itself in the
plaster behind him.

"I've got him, sir," cried Albert, flushed with triumph. "I've lassoed
him. I've been practising with a lasso in my spare time, sir. Can you
give me a hand? He's very violent."

Tommy hastened to his faithful henchman's assistance, mentally
determining that Albert should have no further spare time.

"You damned idiot," he said. "Why didn't you go for a policeman? Owing
to this fool's play of yours, he as near as anything plugged me through
the head. Whew! I've never had such a near escape."

"Lassoed him in the nick of time, I did," said Albert, his ardor quite
undamped. "It's wonderful what those chaps can do on the prairies, sir."

"Quite so," said Tommy, "but we're not on the prairies. We happen to
be in a highly civilized city. And now, my dear sir," he added to his
prostrate foe. "What are we going to do with you?"

A stream of oaths in a foreign language was his only reply.

"Hush," said Tommy. "I don't understand a word of what you're saying,
but I've got a shrewd idea it's not the kind of language to use before
a lady. You'll excuse him, won't you, Miss--do you know, in the
excitement of this little upset, I've quite forgotten your name?"

"March," said the girl. She was still white and shaken. But she came
forward now and stood by Tommy looking down on the recumbent figure of
the discomfited stranger. "What are you going to do with him?"

"I could fetch a bobby now," said Albert helpfully.

But Tommy, looking up, caught a very faint negative movement of the
girl's head, and took his cue accordingly.

"We'll let him off this time," he remarked. "Nevertheless I shall give
myself the pleasure of kicking him downstairs--if it's only to teach
him manners to a lady."

He removed the rope, hauled the victim to his feet, and propelled him
briskly through the outer office.

A series of shrill yelps was heard and then a thud. Tommy came back,
flushed but smiling.

The girl was staring at him with round eyes.

"Did you--hurt him?"

"I hope so," said Tommy. "But these foreigners make a practise of
crying out before they're hurt--so I can't be quite sure about
it. Shall we come back into my office, Miss March, and resume our
interrupted conversation? I don't think we shall be interrupted again."

"I'll have my lasso ready, sir, in case," said the helpful Albert.

"Put it away," ordered Tommy sternly.

He followed the girl into the inner office, and sat down at his desk
whilst she took a chair facing him.

"I don't quite know where to begin," said the girl. "As you heard that
man say, I was a passenger on the Nomadic. The lady you advertised
about, Miss O'Hara, was also on board."

"Exactly," said Tommy. "That we know already, but I suspect you must
know something about her doings on board that boat or else that
picturesque gentleman would not have been in such a hurry to intervene."

"I will tell you everything. The American Ambassador was on board. One
day, as I was passing his cabin, I saw this woman inside, and she was
doing something so extraordinary that I stopped to watch. She had a
man's boot in her hand--"

"A boot?" cried Tommy excitedly. "I'm sorry, Miss March, go on."

"With a little pair of scissors, she was slitting up the lining. Then
she seemed to push something inside. Just at that minute the doctor and
another man came down the passage, and immediately she dropped back on
the couch and groaned. I waited, and I gathered from what was being
said that she had pretended to feel faint. I say _pretended_--because
when I first caught sight of her, she was obviously feeling nothing of
the kind."

Tommy nodded.

"Well?"

"I rather hate to tell you the next part. I was--curious. And also
I'd been reading silly books, and I wondered if she'd put a bomb or a
poisoned needle or something like that in Mr. Wilmott's boot. I know
it's absurd--but I did think so. Anyway, next time I passed the empty
cabin, I slipped in, and examined the boot. I drew out from the lining
a slip of paper. Just as I had it in my hand, I heard the steward
coming, and I hurried out so as not to be caught. The folded paper was
still in my hand. When I got into my own cabin, I examined it. Mr.
Blunt, it was nothing but some verses from the Bible."

"Verses from the Bible?" said Tommy, very much intrigued.

"At least I thought so at the time. I couldn't understand it, but I
thought perhaps it was the work of a religious maniac. Anyway, I didn't
feel it was worth while replacing it. I kept it without thinking much
about it until yesterday when I used it to make into a boat for my
little nephew to sail in his bath. As the paper got wet, I saw a queer
kind of design coming out all over it. I hastily took it out of the
bath, and smoothed it out flat. The water had brought out the hidden
message. It was a kind of tracing--and looked like the mouth of a
harbor. Immediately after that I read your advertisement."

Tommy sprang from his chair.

"But this is most important. I see it all now. That tracing is probably
the plan of some important harbor defences. It had been stolen by this
woman. She feared someone was on her track, and not daring to conceal
it amongst her own belongings, she contrived this hiding-place. Later,
she obtained possession of the bag in which the boot was packed--only
to discover that the paper had vanished. Tell me, Miss March, you have
brought this paper with you?"

The girl shook her head.

"It's at my place of business. I run a beauty parlor in Bond Street. I
am really an agent for the 'Cyclamen' preparations in New York. That
is why I had been over there. I thought the paper might be important,
so I locked it up in the safe before coming out. Ought not Scotland
Yard to know about it?"

"Yes, indeed."

"Then shall we go there now, get it out, and take it straight to
Scotland Yard?"

"I am very busy this afternoon," said Tommy adopting his professional
manner and consulting his watch. "The Bishop of London wants me to take
up a case for him. A very curious problem, concerning some vestments
and two curates."

"Then in that case," said Miss March, rising, "I will go alone."

Tommy raised a hand in protest.

"As I was about to say," he said, "the Bishop must wait. I will leave
a few words with Albert. I am convinced, Miss March, that until that
paper has been safely deposited with Scotland Yard you are in active
danger."

"Do you think so?" said the girl doubtfully.

"I don't think, I'm sure. Excuse me." He scribbled some words on the
pad in front of him, then tore off the leaf and folded it.

Taking his hat and stick, he intimated to the girl that he was ready
to accompany her. In the outer office, he handed the folded paper to
Albert with an air of importance.

"I am called out on an urgent case. Explain that to his lordship if he
comes. Here are my notes on the case for Miss Robinson."

"Very good, sir," said Albert playing up. "And what about the Duchess's
pearls?"

Tommy waved his hand irritably.

"That must wait also."

He and Miss March hurried out. Half way down the stairs they
encountered Tuppence coming up. Tommy passed her with a brusque: "Late
again, Miss Robinson. I am called out on an important case."

Tuppence stood still on the stairs and stared after them. Then, with
raised eyebrows, she went on up to the office.

As they reached the street, a taxi came sailing up to them. Tommy, on
the point of hailing it, changed his mind.

"Are you a good walker, Miss March?" he asked seriously.

"Yes, why? Hadn't we better take that taxi? It will be quicker."

"Perhaps you did not notice. That taxi driver has just refused a fare a
little lower down the street. He was waiting for us. Your enemies are
on the look out. If you feel equal to it, it would be better for us to
walk to Bond Street. In the crowded streets, they will not be able to
attempt much against us."

"Very well," said the girl, rather doubtfully.

They walked westwards. The streets, as Tommy had said, were crowded,
and progress was slow. Tommy kept a sharp look out. Occasionally he
drew the girl to one side with a quick gesture, though she herself had
seen nothing suspicious.

Suddenly glancing at her, he was seized with compunction.

"I say, you look awfully done up. The shock of that man. Come into this
place and have a good cup of strong coffee. I suppose you wouldn't hear
of a nip of brandy."

The girl shook her head, with a faint smile.

"Coffee be it then," said Tommy. "I think we can safely risk its being
poisoned."

They lingered some time over their coffee, and finally set off at a
brisker pace.

"We've thrown them off, I think," said Tommy, looking over his shoulder.

Cyclamen Ltd. was a small establishment in Bond Street, with pale pink
taffeta curtains, and one or two jars of face cream and a cake of soap
decorating the window.

Cicely March entered, and Tommy followed. The place inside was tiny.
On the left was a glass counter with toilet preparations. Behind
this counter was a middle-aged woman with grey hair and an exquisite
complexion who acknowledged Cicely March's entrance with a faint
inclination of the head before continuing to talk to the customer she
was serving.

This customer was a small dark woman. Her back was to them and they
could not see her face. She was speaking in slow difficult English. On
the right was a sofa and a couple of chairs with some magazines on a
table. Here sat two men--apparently bored husbands waiting for their
wives.

Cicely March passed straight on through a door at the end which she
held ajar for Tommy to follow her. As he did so, the woman customer
exclaimed. "Ah! but I think that is _an amigo_ of mine," and rushed
after them, inserting her foot in the door just in time to prevent its
closing. At the same time, the two men rose to their feet. One followed
her through the door, the other advanced to the shop attendant and
clapped his hand over her mouth to drown the scream rising to her lips.

In the meantime, things were happening rather quickly beyond the swing
door. As Tommy passed through, a cloth was flung over his head, and
a sickly odor assailed his nostrils. Almost as soon however, it was
jerked off again, and a woman's scream rang out.

Tommy blinked a little and coughed as he took in the scene in front of
him. On his right was the mysterious stranger of a few hours ago, and
busily fitting handcuffs upon him was one of the bored men from the
shop parlor. Just in front of him was Cicely March wrestling vainly
to free herself, whilst the woman customer from the shop held her
firmly pinioned. As the latter turned her head, and the veil she wore
unfastened itself and fell off, the well known features of Tuppence
were revealed.

"Well done, Tuppence," said Tommy, moving forward. "Let me give you a
hand. I shouldn't struggle if I were you, Miss O'Hara--or do you prefer
to be called Miss March?"

"This is Inspector Grace, Tommy," said Tuppence. "As soon as I read the
note you left I rang up Scotland Yard, and Inspector Grace and another
man met me outside here."

"Very glad to get hold of this gentleman," said the Inspector,
indicating his prisoner. "He's wanted badly. But we've never had cause
to suspect this place--thought it was a genuine beauty shop."

"You see," explained Tommy gently. "We do have to be so very careful!
Why should anyone want the Ambassador's bag for an hour or so? I put
the question the other way round. Supposing it was the other bag
that was the important one. Someone wanted that bag to be in the
Ambassador's possession for an hour or so. Much more illuminating!
Diplomatic luggage is not subjected to the indignities of a Customs
examination. Clearly smuggling. But smuggling of what? Nothing too
bulky. At once I thought of drugs. Then that picturesque comedy was
enacted in my office. They'd seen my advertisement and wanted to put
me off the scent--or failing that, out of the way altogether. But
I happened to notice an expression of blank dismay in the charming
lady's eyes when Albert did his lasso act. That didn't fit in very well
with her supposed part. The stranger's attack was meant to assure my
confidence in her. I played the part of the credulous sleuth with all
my might--swallowed her rather impossible story and permitted her to
lure me here, carefully leaving behind full instructions for dealing
with the situation. Under various pretexts I delayed our arrival, so as
to give you all plenty of time."

Cicely March was looking at him with a stony expression.

"You are mad. What do you expect to find here?"

"Remembering that Richards saw a tin of bath salts, what do you say
about beginning with the bath salts, eh Inspector?"

"A very sound idea, sir."

He picked up one of the dainty pink tins, and emptied it on the table.
The girl laughed.

"Genuine crystals, eh?" said Tommy. "Nothing more deadly than carbonate
of soda?"

"Try the safe," suggested Tuppence.

There was a small wall safe in the corner. The key was in the lock.
Tommy swung it open and gave a shout of satisfaction. The back of the
safe opened out into a big recess in the wall, and that recess was
stacked with the same elegant tins of bath salts. Rows and rows of
them. He took one out and prised up the lid. The top showed the same
pink crystals, but underneath was a fine white powder.

The Inspector uttered an ejaculation.

"You've got it, sir. Ten to one, that tin's full of pure cocaine. We
knew there was a distributing area somewhere round here, handy to the
West End, but we haven't been able to get a clue to it. This is a fine
coup of yours, sir."

"Rather a triumph for Blunt's Brilliant Detectives," said Tommy to
Tuppence, as they emerged into the street together. "It's a great thing
to be a married man. Your persistent schooling has at last taught me
to recognize peroxide when I see it. Golden hair has got to be the
genuine article to take me in. We will concoct a business like letter
to the Ambassador, informing him that the matter has been dealt with
satisfactorily. And now, my dear fellow, what about tea, and lots of
hot buttered muffins?"




                             CHAPTER XXIII

                        THE MAN WHO WAS NO. 16


Tommy and Tuppence were closeted with the Chief in his private room.
His commendation had been warm and sincere.

"You have succeeded admirably. Thanks to you we have laid our hands
on no less than five very interesting personages, and from them we
have received much valuable information. Meanwhile I learn from a
creditable source that headquarters in Moscow have taken alarm at the
failure of their agents to report. I think, that in spite of all our
precautions, they have begun to suspect that all is not well at what I
may call the distributing centre--the office of Mr. Theodore Blunt--the
International Detective Bureau."

"Well," said Tommy. "I suppose they were bound to tumble to it sometime
or other, sir."

"As you say, it was only to be expected. But I am a little
worried--about Mrs. Tommy."

"I can look after her all right, sir," said Tommy, at exactly the same
minute as Tuppence said, "I can take care of myself."

"H'm," said Mr. Carter. "Excessive self-confidence was always a
characteristic of you two. Whether your immunity is entirely due to
your own superhuman cleverness, or whether a small percentage of
luck creeps in, I'm not prepared to say. But luck changes, you know.
However, I won't argue the point. From my extensive knowledge of Mrs.
Tommy, I suppose it's quite useless to ask her to keep out of the
limelight for the next week or two?"

Tuppence shook her head very energetically.

"Then all I can do is to give you all the information that I can. We
have reason to believe that a special agent has been despatched from
Moscow to this country. We don't know what name he is travelling under,
we don't know when he will arrive. But we do know something about him.
He is a man who gave us great trouble in the War, a ubiquitous kind of
fellow who turned up all over the place where we least wanted him. He
is a Russian by birth, and an accomplished linguist--so much so that he
can pass as half a dozen other nationalities, including our own. He is
also a past master in the art of disguise. And he has brains. It was he
who devised the No. 16 code.

"When and how he will turn up, I do not know. But I am fairly certain
that he _will_ turn up. We do know this--he was not personally
acquainted with the real Mr. Theodore Blunt. I think that he will turn
up at your office, on the pretext of a case which he will wish you to
take up, and will try you with the passwords. The first, as you know,
is the mention of the number sixteen--which is replied to by a sentence
containing the same number. The second, which we have only just learnt,
is an inquiry as to whether you have ever crossed the Channel. The
answer to that is: 'I was in Berlin on the 13th of last month.' As far
as we know, that is all. I would suggest that you reply correctly, and
so endeavor to gain his confidence. Sustain the fiction if you possibly
can. But even if he appears to be completely deceived, remain on your
guard. Our friend is particularly astute, and can play a double game as
well, or better, than you can. But in either case, I hope to get him
through you. From this day forward I am adopting special precautions. A
dictaphone was installed last night in your office, so that one of my
men in the room below will be able to hear everything that passes in
your office. In this way, I shall be immediately informed if anything
arises, and can take the necessary steps to safeguard you and your wife
whilst securing the man I am after."

After a few more instructions, and a general discussion of tactics, the
two young people departed, and made their way as rapidly as possible to
the office of Blunt's Brilliant Detectives.

"It's late," said Tommy, looking at his watch. "Just on twelve
o'clock. We've been a long time with the Chief. I hope we haven't
missed a particularly spicy case."

"On the whole," said Tuppence, "we've not done badly. I was tabulating
results the other day. We've solved four baffling murder mysteries,
rounded up a gang of counterfeiters, ditto gang of smugglers--"

"Actually two gangs," interpolated Tommy. "So we have! I'm glad of
that. 'Gangs' sounds so professional."

Tuppence continued, ticking off the items on her fingers.

"One jewel robbery, two escapes from violent death, one case of
missing lady reducing her figure, one young girl befriended, an alibi
successfully exploded, and alas! one case where we made utter fools of
ourselves. On the whole, jolly good! We're _very_ clever, I think."

"You would think so," said Tommy. "You always do. Now I have a secret
feeling that once or twice we've been rather lucky."

"Nonsense," said Tuppence. "All done by the little grey cells."

"Well, I was damned lucky once," said Tommy. "The day that Albert did
his lasso act! But you speak, Tuppence, as though it was all over?"

"So it is," said Tuppence. She lowered her voice impressively. "This
is our last case. When they have laid the super spy by the heels,
the great detectives intend to retire and take to bee keeping or
vegetable-marrow growing. It's always done."

"Tired of it, eh?"

"Ye-es, I think I am. Besides, we're so successful now--the luck might
change."

"Who's talking about luck now?" asked Tommy triumphantly.

At that moment they turned in at the doorway of the block of buildings
in which the International Detective Bureau had its offices, and
Tuppence did not reply.

Albert was on duty in the outer office, employing his leisure in
balancing, or endeavoring to balance, the office ruler upon his nose.

With a stern frown of reproof, the great Mr. Blunt passed into his own
private office. Divesting himself of his overcoat and hat, he opened
the cupboard, on the shelves of which reposed his classic library of
the great detectives of fiction.

"The choice narrows," murmured Tommy. "On whom shall I model myself
to-day?"

Tuppence's voice, with an unusual note in it, made him turn sharply.

"Tommy," she said. "What day of the month is it?"

"Let me see--the eleventh--why?"

"Look at the calendar."

Hanging on the wall was one of those calendars from which you tear
a leaf every day. It bore the legend of Sunday the 16th. To-day was
Monday.

"By Jove, that's odd. Albert must have torn off too many. Careless
little devil."

"I don't believe he did," said Tuppence. "But we'll ask him."

Albert, summoned and questioned, seemed very astonished. He swore he
had only torn off one leaf--that of the day before. His statement was
presently supported, for whereas the leaf torn off by Albert was found
in the grate, the succeeding ones were lying neatly in the waste paper
basket.

"A neat and methodical criminal," said Tommy. "Who's been here this
morning, Albert? A client of any kind?"

"Just one, sir."

"What was he like?"

"It was a she. A Hospital Nurse. Very upset and anxious to see you.
Said she'd wait until you came. I put her in 'Clerks' because it was
warmer."

"And from there she could walk in here, of course, without your seeing
her. How long has she been gone?"

"About half an hour, sir. Said she'd call again this afternoon. A nice
motherly looking body."

"A nice motherly--oh! get out, Albert."

Albert withdrew, injured.

"Queer start, that," said Tommy. "It seems a little purposeless.
Puts us on our guard. I suppose there isn't a bomb concealed in the
fireplace or anything of that kind?"

He reassured himself on that point, then he seated himself at the desk
and addressed Tuppence.

"Mon ami," he said. "We are here faced with a matter of the utmost
gravity. You recall, do you not, the man who was No. 4. Him whom I
crushed like an egg shell in the Dolomites--with the aid of high
explosives, _bien entendu_. But he was not really dead--ah! no, they
are never really dead, these super criminals. This is the man--but even
more so, if I may so put it. He is the 4 squared--in other words, he is
now the No. 16. You comprehend, my friend?"

"Perfectly," said Tuppence. "You are the great Hercule Poirot."

"Exactly. No moustaches, but lots of grey cells."

"I've a feeling," said Tuppence, "that this particular adventure will
be called the 'Triumph of Hastings.'"

"Never," said Tommy. "It isn't done. Once the idiot friend, always the
idiot friend. There's an etiquette in these matters. By the way, mon
ami, can you not part your hair in the middle instead of one side? The
present effect is unsymmetrical and deplorable."

The buzzer rang sharply on Tommy's desk. He returned the signal and
Albert appeared bearing a card.

"Prince Vladiroffsky," read Tommy, in a low voice. He looked at
Tuppence. "I wonder--Show him in, Albert."

The man who entered was of middle height, graceful in bearing, with a
fair beard, and apparently about thirty-five years of age.

"Mr. Blunt?" he inquired. His English was perfect. "You have been most
highly recommended to me. Will you take up a case for me?"

"If you will give me the details--?"

"Certainly. It concerns the daughter of a friend of mine--a girl of
sixteen. We are anxious for no scandal--you understand."

"My dear sir," said Tommy. "This business has been running successfully
for sixteen years owing to our strict attention to that particular
principle."

He fancied he saw a sudden gleam in the other's eye. If so, it passed
as quickly as it came.

"You have branches, I believe, on the other side of the Channel?"

"Oh! yes. As a matter of fact," he brought out the word with great
deliberation, "I myself was in Berlin on the 13th of last month."

"In that case," said the stranger, "it is hardly necessary to keep
up the little fiction. The daughter of my friend can be conveniently
dismissed. You know who I am--at any rate I see you have had warning of
my coming."

He nodded towards the calendar on the wall.

"Quite so," said Tommy.

"My friends--I have come over here to investigate matters. What has
been happening?"

"Treachery," said Tuppence, no longer able to remain quiescent.

The Russian shifted his attention to her, and raised his eyebrows.

"Ah ha, that is so, is it? I thought as much. Was it Sergius?"

"We think so," said Tuppence unblushingly.

"It would not surprise me. But you yourselves, you are under no
suspicion?"

"I do not think so. We handle a good deal of _bona fide_ business, you
see," explained Tommy.

The Russian nodded.

"That is wise. All the same, I think it would be better if I did not
come here again. For the moment, I am staying at the Blitz. I will take
Marise--this is Marise, I suppose?"

Tuppence nodded.

"What is she known as here?"

"Oh! Miss Robinson."

"Very well, Miss Robinson, you will return with me to the Blitz and
lunch with me there. We will all meet at headquarters at three o'clock.
Is that clear?" He looked at Tommy.

"Perfectly clear," replied Tommy, wondering where on earth headquarters
might be.

But he guessed that it was just those very headquarters that Mr. Carter
was so anxious to discover.

Tuppence rose and slipped on her long black coat with its leopardskin
collar. Then, demurely, she declared herself ready to accompany the
Prince.

They went out together, and Tommy was left behind, a prey to
conflicting emotions.

Supposing something had gone wrong with the dictaphone? Supposing
the mysterious Hospital Nurse had somehow or other learnt of its
installation, and had rendered it useless?

He seized the telephone and called a certain number. There was a
moment's delay, and then a well known voice spoke.

"Quite O.K. Come round to the Blitz at once."

Five minutes later Tommy and Mr. Carter met in the Palm Court of the
Blitz. The latter was crisp and reassuring.

"You've done excellently. The Prince and the little lady are at
lunch in the Restaurant. I've got two of my men in there as waiters.
Whether he suspects, or whether he doesn't--and I'm fairly sure he
doesn't--we've got him on toast. There are two men posted upstairs to
watch his suite, and more outside ready to follow wherever they go.
Don't be worried about your wife. She'll be kept in sight the whole
time. I'm not going to run any risks."

Occasionally one of the Secret Service men came to report progress. The
first time it was a waiter who took their orders for cocktails, the
second time it was a fashionable vacant-faced young man.

"They're coming out," said Mr. Carter. "We'll retire behind this pillar
in case they sit down here, but I fancy he'll take her up to his suite.
Ah! yes, I thought so."

From their post of vantage, Tommy saw the Russian and Tuppence cross
the hall and enter the lift.

The minutes passed and Tommy began to fidget.

"Do you think, sir. I mean, alone in that suite--"

"One of my men's inside--behind the sofa. Don't worry, man."

A waiter crossed the hall and came up to Mr. Carter.

"Got the signal they were coming up, sir--but they haven't come. Is it
all right?"

"What?" Mr. Carter spun around. "I saw them go into the lift myself.
Just"--he glanced up at the clock--"four and a half minutes ago. And
they haven't shown up...."

He hurried across to the lift which had just that minute come down
again, and spoke to the uniformed attendant.

"You took up a gentleman with a fair beard and a young lady a few
minutes ago to the second floor."

"Not the second floor. Third floor the gentleman asked for."

"Oh!" The Chief jumped in, motioning Tommy to accompany him. "Take us
up to the third floor, please."

"I don't understand this," he murmured in a low voice. "But keep calm.
Every exit from the Hotel is watched, and I've got a man on the third
floor as well--on every floor, in fact. I was taking no chances."

The lift door opened on the third floor and they sprang out, hurrying
down the corridor. Half way along it, a man dressed as a waiter came to
meet them.

"It's all right, Chief. They're in No. 318."

Carter breathed a sigh of relief.

"That's all right. No other exit?"

"It's a suite, but there are only these two doors into the corridor,
and to get out from any of these rooms, they'd have to pass us to get
to the staircase or the lifts."

"That's all right, then. Just telephone down and find out who is
supposed to be occupying this suite."

The waiter returned in a minute or two.

"Mrs. Cortlandt Van Snyder of Detroit."

Mr. Carter became very thoughtful.

"I wonder now. Is this Mrs. Van Snyder an accomplice, or is she--"

He left the sentence unfinished.

"Hear any noise from inside?" he asked abruptly.

"Not a thing. But the doors fit well. One couldn't hope to hear much."

Mr. Carter made up his mind suddenly.

"I don't like this business. We're going in. Got the master key?"

"Of course, sir."

"Call up Evans and Clydesly."

Reinforced by the other two men, they advanced towards the door of the
suite. It opened noiselessly when the first man inserted his key.

They found themselves in a small hall. To the right was the open door
of a bathroom, and in front of them was the sitting-room. On the left
was a closed door and from behind it a faint sound--rather like an
asthmatic pug--could be heard. Mr. Carter pushed the door open and
entered.

The room was a bedroom, with a big double bed ornately covered with a
bedspread of rose and gold. On it, bound hand and foot, with her mouth
secured by a gag and her eyes almost starting out of her head with
pain and rage, was a middle-aged fashionably-dressed woman.

On a brief order from Mr. Carter, the other men had covered the whole
suite. Only Tommy and his Chief had entered the bedroom. As he leant
over the bed and strove to unfasten the knots, Carter's eyes went
roving round the room in perplexity. Save for an immense quantity of
truly American luggage, the room was empty. There was no sign of the
Russian or Tuppence.

In another minute the waiter came hurrying in, and reported that the
other rooms were also empty. Tommy went to the window, only to draw
back and shake his head. There was no balcony--nothing but a sheer drop
to the street below.

"Certain it was this room they entered?" asked Carter peremptorily.

"Sure. Besides--" The man indicated the woman on the bed.

With the aid of a pen knife, Carter parted the scarf that was half
choking her, and it was at once clear that whatever her sufferings,
they had not deprived Mrs. Cortlandt Van Snyder of the use of her
tongue.

When she had exhausted her first indignation, Mr. Carter spoke mildly.

"Would you mind telling me exactly what happened--from the beginning?"

"I guess I'll sue the Hotel for this. It's a perfect outrage. I was
just looking for my bottle of 'Killagrippe' when a man sprang on me
from behind and broke a little glass bottle right under my nose, and
before I could get my breath I was all in. When I came to I was lying
here, all trussed up, and goodness knows what's happened to my jewels.
He's gotten the lot, I guess."

"Your jewels are quite safe, I fancy," said Mr. Carter drily. He
wheeled round and picked up something from the floor. "You were
standing just where I am when he sprang upon you?"

"That's so," assented Mrs. Van Snyder.

It was a fragment of thin glass that Mr. Carter had picked up. He
sniffed it and handed it to Tommy.

"Ethyl Chloride," he murmured. "Instant anaesthetic. But it only keeps
one under for a moment or two. Surely he must still have been in the
room when you came to, Mrs. Van Snyder?"

"Isn't that just what I'm telling you? Oh! it drove me half crazy to
see him getting away and me not able to move or do anything at all."

"Getting away?" said Mr. Carter sharply. "Which way?"

"Through that door." She pointed to one in the opposite wall. "He had a
girl with him, but she seemed kind of limp as though she'd had a dose
of the same dope."

Carter looked a question at his henchman.

"Leads into the next suite, sir. But double doors--supposed to be
bolted each side."

Mr. Carter examined the door carefully. Then he straightened himself up
and turned towards the bed.

"Mrs. Van Snyder," he said quietly. "Do you still persist in your
assertion that the man went out this way?"

"Why, certainly he did. Why shouldn't he?"

"Because the door happens to be bolted on this side," said Mr. Carter
drily. He rattled the handle as he spoke.

A look of the utmost astonishment spread over Mrs. Van Snyder's face.

"Unless someone bolted the door behind him," said Mr. Carter, "he
cannot have gone out that way."

He turned to Evans who had just entered the room.

"Sure they're not anywhere in this suite? Any other communicating
doors?"

"No, sir, and I'm quite sure."

Carter turned his gaze this way and that about the room. He opened the
big hanging wardrobe, looked under the bed, up the chimney and behind
all the curtains. Finally, struck by a sudden idea, and disregarding
Mrs. Van Snyder's shrill protests, he opened the large wardrobe trunk
and rummaged swiftly in the interior.

Suddenly Tommy, who had been examining the communicating door, gave an
exclamation.

"Come here, sir, look at this. They did go this way."

The bolt had been very cleverly filed through, so close to the socket
that the join was hardly perceptible.

"The door won't open because it's locked on the other side," explained
Tommy.

In another minute they were out in the corridor again and the waiter
was opening the door of the adjoining suite with his pass key. This
suite was untenanted. When they came to the communicating door, they
saw that the same plan had been adopted. The bolt had been filed
through, and the door was locked, the key having been removed. But
nowhere in the suite was there any sign of Tuppence or the fair-bearded
Russian, and there was no other communicating door, only the one on the
corridor.

"But I'd have seen them come out," protested the waiter. "I couldn't
have helped seeing them. I can take my oath they never did."

"Damn it all," cried Tommy. "They can't have vanished into thin air!"

Carter was calm again now, his keen brain working.

"Telephone down and find who had this suite last, and when."

Evans, who had come with them, leaving Clydesly on guard in the other
suite, obeyed. Presently he raised his head from the telephone.

"An invalid French lad, M. Paul de Varez. He had a Hospital Nurse with
him. They left this morning."

An exclamation burst from the other Secret Service man, the waiter. He
had gone deathly pale.

"The invalid boy--the Hospital Nurse," he stammered. "I--they passed me
in the passage. I never dreamed--I had seen them so often before."

"Are you sure they were the same?" cried Mr. Carter. "Are you sure,
man? You looked at them well?"

The man shook his head.

"I hardly glanced at them. I was waiting, you understand, on the alert
for the others, the man with the fair beard and the girl."

"Of course," said Mr. Carter, with a groan. "They counted on that."

With a sudden exclamation, Tommy stooped down and pulled something out
from under the sofa. It was a small rolled up bundle of black. Tommy
unrolled it and several articles fell out. The outside wrapper was
the long black coat Tuppence had worn that day. Inside was her walking
dress, her hat and a long fair beard.

"It's clear enough now," he said bitterly. "They've got her--got
Tuppence. That Russian devil has given us the slip. The Hospital Nurse
and the boy were accomplices. They stayed here for a day or two to
get the Hotel people accustomed to their presence. The man must have
realised at lunch that he was trapped and proceeded to carry out his
plan. Probably he counted on the room next door being empty since it
was when he fixed the bolts. Anyway he managed to silence both the
woman next door and Tuppence, brought her in here, dressed her in boy's
clothes, altered his own appearance, and walked out as bold as brass.
The clothes must have been hidden ready. But I don't quite see how he
managed Tuppence's acquiescence."

"I can see," said Mr. Carter. He picked up a little shining piece of
steel from the carpet. "That's a fragment of a hypodermic needle. She
was doped."

"My God!" groaned Tommy. "And he's got clear away."

"We won't know that," said Carter quickly. "Remember every exit is
watched."

"For a man and a girl. Not for a Hospital Nurse and an invalid boy.
They'll have left the Hotel by now."

Such, on inquiry, proved to be the case. The nurse and her patient had
driven away in a taxi some five minutes earlier.

"Look here, Beresford," said Mr. Carter. "For God's sake, pull yourself
together. You know that I won't leave a stone unturned to find that
girl. I'm going back to my office at once and in less than five minutes
every resource of the department will be at work. We'll get them yet."

"Will you, sir? He's a clever devil, that Russian. Look at the cunning
of this coup of his. But I know you'll do your best. Only--pray God
it's not too late. They've got it in for us badly."

He left the Blitz Hotel and walked blindly along the street, hardly
knowing where he was going. He felt completely paralyzed. Where to
search? What to do?

He went into the Green Park, and dropped down upon a seat. He hardly
noticed when someone else sat down at the opposite end, and was quite
startled to hear a well known voice.

"If you please, sir, if I might make so bold--"

Tommy looked up.

"Hullo, Albert," he said dully.

"I know all about it, sir--but don't take on so."

"Don't take on--" He gave a short laugh. "Easily said, isn't it?"

"Ah, but think, sir. Blunt's Brilliant Detectives! Never beaten. And
if you'll excuse my saying so, I happen to overhear what you and the
Missus was ragging about this morning. Mr. Poirot, and his little grey
cells. Well, sir, why not use your little grey cells, and see what you
can do?"

"It's easier to use your little grey cells in fiction than it is in
fact, my boy."

"Well," said Albert stoutly, "I don't believe anybody could put
the Missus out, for good and all. You know what she is, sir, just
like one of those rubber bones you buy for little dogs--guaranteed
indestructible."

"Albert," said Tommy, "you cheer me."

"Then what about using your little grey cells, sir?"

"You're a persistent lad, Albert. Playing the fool has served us pretty
well up to now. We'll try it again. Let us arrange our facts neatly,
and with method. At ten minutes past two exactly, our quarry enters the
lift. Five minutes later we speak to the lift man, and having heard
what he says, we also go up to the third floor. At, say, nineteen
minutes past two we enter the suite of Mrs. Van Snyder. And now, what
significant fact strikes us?"

There was a pause, no significant fact striking either of them.

"There wasn't such a thing as a trunk in the room, was there?" asked
Albert, his eyes lighting suddenly.

"Mon ami," said Tommy. "You do not understand the psychology of an
American woman who has just returned from Paris. There were, I should
say, about nineteen trunks in the room."

"What I meantersay is, a trunk's a handy thing if you've got a dead
body about you want to get rid of--not that she _is_ dead, for a
minute."

"We searched the only two that were big enough to contain a body. What
is the next fact in chronological order?"

"You've missed one out--when the Missus and the bloke dressed up as a
Hospital Nurse passed the waiter in the passage."

"It must have been just before we came up in the lift," said Tommy.
"They must have had a narrow escape of meeting us face to face. Pretty
quick work, that. I--"

He stopped.

"What is it, sir?"

"Be silent, mon ami. I have the kind of little idea--colossal,
stupendous--that always comes sooner or later to Hercule Poirot. But if
so--if that's it--Oh! Lord, I hope I'm in time."

He raced out of the Park, Albert hard on his heels, inquiring
breathlessly as he ran. "What's up, sir? I don't understand."

"That's all right," said Tommy. "You're not supposed to. Hastings never
did. If your grey cells weren't of a very inferior order to mine, what
fun do you think I should get out of this game? I'm talking damned
rot--but I can't help it. You're a good lad, Albert. You know what
Tuppence is worth--she's worth a dozen of you and me."

Thus talking breathlessly as he ran, Tommy reëntered the portals of the
Blitz. He caught sight of Evans, and drew him aside with a few hurried
words. The two men entered the lift, Albert with them.

"Third floor," said Tommy.

At the door of No. 318 they paused. Evans had a pass key, and used it
forthwith. Without a word of warning, they walked straight into Mrs.
Van Snyder's bedroom. The lady was still lying on the bed, but was now
arrayed in a becoming negligee. She stared at them in surprise.

"Pardon my failure to knock," said Tommy, pleasantly. "But I want my
wife. Do you mind getting off that bed?"

"I guess you've gone plumb crazy," cried Mrs. Van Snyder.

Tommy surveyed her thoughtfully, his head on one side.

"Very artistic," he pronounced. "But it won't do. We looked _under_
the bed--but not _in_ it. I remember using that hiding-place myself
when young. Horizontally across the bed, underneath the bolster. And
that nice wardrobe trunk all ready to take away the body in later.
But we were a bit too quick for you just now. You'd had time to dope
Tuppence, put her under the bolster, and be gagged and bound by your
accomplices next door, and I'll admit we swallowed your story all
right for the moment. But when one came to think it out--with order
and method--impossible to drug a girl, dress her in boy's clothes, gag
and bind another woman, and change one's own appearance--all in five
minutes. Simply a physical impossibility. The Hospital Nurse and the
boy were to be a decoy. We were to follow that trail, and Mrs. Van
Snyder was to be a pitied victim. Just help the lady off the bed, will
you, Evans? You have your automatic? Good."

Protesting shrilly, Mrs. Van Snyder was hauled from her place of
repose. Tommy tore off the coverings and the bolster.

There, lying horizontally across the top of the bed was Tuppence, her
eyes closed, and her face waxen. For a moment, Tommy felt a sudden
dread, then he saw the slight rise and fall of her breast. She was
drugged, not dead.

He turned to Albert and Evans.

"And now, Messieurs," he said dramatically. "The final _coup_!"

With a swift unexpected gesture, he seized Mrs. Van Snyder by her
elaborately dressed hair. It came off in his hand.

"As I thought," said Tommy. "_No._ 16!"

It was about half an hour later when Tuppence opened her eyes and found
a doctor and Tommy bending over her.

Over the events of the next quarter of an hour a decent veil had better
be drawn, but after that period the doctor departed with the assurance
that all was now well.

"Mon ami, Hastings," said Tommy fondly. "How I rejoice that you are
still alive."

"Have we got No. 16?"

"Once more have I crushed him like an egg shell--In other words,
Carter's got him. The little grey cells! By the way, I'm raising
Albert's wages."

"Tell me all about it."

Tommy gave her a spirited narrative, with certain omissions.

"Weren't you half frantic about me?" asked Tuppence faintly.

"Not particularly. One must keep calm, you know."

"Liar!" said Tuppence. "You look quite haggard still."

"Well, perhaps I was just a little worried, darling. I say--we're going
to give it up now, aren't we?"

"Certainly we are."

Tommy gave a sigh of relief.

"I hoped you'd be sensible. After a shock like this--"

"It's not the shock. You know I never mind shocks."

"A rubber bone--indestructible," murmured Tommy.

"I've got something better to do," continued Tuppence. "Something ever
so much more exciting. Something I've never done before."

Tommy looked at her with lively apprehension.

"I forbid it, Tuppence."

"You can't," said Tuppence. "It's a law of nature."

"What are you talking about, Tuppence?"

"I'm talking," said Tuppence, "of Our Baby. Wives don't whisper
nowadays. They shout. OUR BABY! Tommy, isn't everything marvellous?"



*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PARTNERS IN CRIME ***


    

Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.


START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG™ LICENSE

PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg
electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country other than the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg work (any work
on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

    This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
    other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
    whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
    of the Project Gutenberg™ License included with this eBook or online
    at www.gutenberg.org. If you
    are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
    of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
  
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg electronic works
provided that:

    • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
        the use of Project Gutenberg works calculated using the method
        you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
        to the owner of the Project Gutenberg trademark, but he has
        agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
        within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
        legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
        payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
        Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
        Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
        Literary Archive Foundation.”
    
    • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
        you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
        does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
        License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
        copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
        all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
        works.
    
    • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
        any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
        electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
        receipt of the work.
    
    • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
        distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
    

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg

Project Gutenberg is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg’s
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.

Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.

The Foundation’s business office is located at 41 Watchung Plaza #516,
Montclair NJ 07042, USA, +1 (862) 621-9288. Email contact links and up
to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg electronic works

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.

This website includes information about Project Gutenberg,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.